Full Judgment Text
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 1 of 116
CASE NO.:
Writ Petition (civil) 317 of 1993
PETITIONER:
T.M.A.Pai Foundation & Ors.
RESPONDENT:
State of Karnataka & Ors.
DATE OF JUDGMENT: 31/10/2002
BENCH:
B.N.KIRPAL CJI & G.B.PATTANAIK & V.N.KHARE & S.RAJENDRA BABU & S.S.M.QUADRI
JUDGMENT:
BHAN & ARIJIT PASAYAT
&
JUDGMENT
W I T H
Writ Petition (Civil) Nos. 252 of 1979, 54-57, 2228 of 1981, 2460, 2582,
2583-84,3362, 3517, 3602, 3603, 3634, 3635, 3636, 8398, 8391, 5621, 5035,
3701, 3702,3703, 3704, 3715, 3728, 4648, 4649, 2479, 2480, 2547 and 3475 of
1982, 7610,4810, 9839 and 9683-84 of 1983, 12622-24 of 1984, 119 and 133 of
1987, 620 of 1989, 133 of 1992, 746, 327, 350, 613, 597, 536, 626, 444,
417, 523, 474, 485, 484,355, 525, 469, 392, 629, 399, 531, 603, 702, 628,
663, 284, 555, 343, 596, 407, 737,738, 747, 479, 610, 627, 685, 706, 726,
598, 482 and 571 of 1993, 295, 764 and D. No. 1741 of 1994, 331, 446 and
447 of 1995, 364 and 435 of 1996, 456, 454, 447 and 485 of 1997, 356, 357
and 328 of 1998, 199, 294, 279, 35, 181, 373, 487 and 23 of 1999, 561 of
2000, 6 and 132 of 2002, Civil Appeal Nos. 1236-1241 and 2392 of 1977, 687
of 1976, 3179, 3180, 3181, 3182, 1521-56, 3042-91 of 1979, 2929-31, 1464 of
1980, 2271 and 2443-46 of 1981, 4020, 290 and 10766 of 1983, 5042 and 5043
of 1989, 6147 and 5381 of 1990, 71, 72 and 73 of 1991, 1890-91, 2414 and
2625 of 1992, 4695-4746, 4754-4866 of 1993, 5543-5544 of 1994, 8098-
8100 and 11321 of 1995, 4654-4658 of 1997, 608, 3543 and 3584-3585 of 1998,
5053-5054 of 2000, 5647, 5648-5649, 5650, 5651, 5652, 5653-5654, 5655,
5656 of 2001 and 2334 of 2002, S.L.P. (C) Nos. 9950 and 9951 of 1979,
11526 and 863 of 1980, 12408 of 1985, 8844 of 1986, 12320 of 1987, 14437,
18061-62 of 1993, 904-05 and 11620 of 1994, 23421 of 1995, 4372 of 1996,
10360 and 10664 of 1997, 1216, 9779-9786, 6472-6474 and 9793 of 1998,
5101, 4480 and 4486 of 2002 T.C. (Civil) No. 26 of 1990 and T.P. (Civil)
Nos. 1013-14 of 1993.
DELIVERED BY:
B.N.KIRPAL, CJI & S.S.M.QUADRI & S.N.VARIAVA & V.N.KHARE & RUMA PAL
Kirpal, C.J.
1. India is a land of diversity -- of different castes, peoples,
communities, languages, religions and culture. Although these people enjoy
complete political freedom, a vast part of the multitude is illiterate and
lives below the poverty line. The single most powerful tool for the
upliftment and progress of such diverse communities is eduction. The state,
with its limited resources and slow-moving machinery, is unable to fully
develop the genius of the Indian people very often t he impersonal
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 2 of 116
education that is imparted by the state, devoid of adequate material
content that will make the students self-reliant only succeeds in producing
potential pen-pushers, as a result of which sufficient jobs are not
available.
2. It is in this scenario where there is a lack of quality education and
adequate number of schools and colleges that private educational
institutions have been established by educationists, philanthropists and
religious and linguistic minorities. Their grievance is that the necessary
and unproductive load on their back in the form of governmental control, by
way of rules and regulations, has thwarted the progress of quality
education. It is their contention that the government must get off their
back, and that they should be allowed to provide quality education
uninterrupted by unnecessary rules and regulations, laid down by the
bureaucracy for its own self-importance. The private educational
institutions, both aided and unaided, established by minorities and non-
minorities, in their desire to break free of the unnecessary shackles put
on their functioning as modern educational institutions and seeking to
impart quality education for the benefit of the community for whom they
were established, and others, have filed the present writ petitions and
appeals asserting their right to establish and administer educational
institutions of their choice unhampered by rules and regulations that
unnecessarily impinge upon their autonomy.
3. The hearing of these cases has had a chequered history. Writ Petition
No. 350 of 1993 filed by the Islamic Academy of Education and connected
petitions were placed before a Bench of 5 Judges. As the Bench was prima
facie of the opinion that Article 30 did not clothe a minority educational
institution with the power to adopt its own method of selection and the
correctness of the decision of this Court in St. Stephen’s College v.
University of Delhi was doubted, it was directed that the questions that
arose should be authoritatively answered by a larger Bench. These cases
were then placed before a Bench of 7 Judges. The questions framed were
recast and on 6th February, 1997, the Court directed that the matter be
placed a Bench of at least 11 Judges, as it was felt that in view of the
Forty-Second Amendment to the Constitution, whereby "education" had been
included in Entry 25 of List III of the Seventh Schedule, the question of
who would be regarded as a "minority" was required to be considered because
the earlier case laws related to the pre-amendment era, when education was
only in the State List. When the cases came up for hearing before an eleven
Judge Bench, during the course of hearing on 19th March, 1997, the
following order was passed:-
"Since a doubt has arisen during the course of our arguments as to whether
this Bench would feel itself bound by the ratio propounded in -- In Re
Kerala Education Bill, 1957 (1959 SCR 955) and the Ahmedabad St. Xaviers
College Society v. State of Gujarat, , it is clarified that this sized
Bench would not feel itself inhibited by the views expressed in those cases
since the present endeavour is to discern the true scope and interpretation
of Article 30(1) of the Constitution, which being the dominant question
would require examination in its pristine purity. The factum is recorded."
4. When the hearing of these cases commended, some questions out of the
eleven referred for consideration were reframed. We propose to give answers
to these questions after examining the rival contentions on the issues
arising therein.
5. On behalf of all these institutions, the learned counsels have submitted
that the Constitution provides a fundamental right to establish and
administer educational institutions. With regard to non-minorities, the
right was stated to be contained in Article 19(1)(g) and/or Article 26,
while in the case of linguistic and religious minorities, the submission
was that this right was enshrined and protected by Article 30. It was
further their case that private educational institutions should have full
autonomy in their administration. While it is necessary for an educational
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 3 of 116
institution to secure recognition or affiliation, and for which purpose
rules and regulations or conditions could be prescribed pertaining to the
requirement of the quality of education to be provided, e.g.,
qualifications of teachers, curriculum to be taught and the minimum
facilities which should be available for the students, it was submitted
that the state should not have a right to interfere or lay down conditions
with regard to the administration of those institutions. In particular,
objection was taken to the nominations by the state on the governing bodies
of the private institutions, as well as to provisions with regard to the
manner of admitting students, the fixing of the fee structure and
recruitment of teachers through state channels.
6. The counsels for these educational institutions, as well as the
Solicitor General of India, appearing on behalf of the Union of India,
urged that the decision of this Court in Unni Krishnan, J.P. and Ors. v.
State of Andhra Pradesh and Ors. case required reconsideration. It was
submitted that the scheme that had been framed in Unni Krishnan’s case had
imposed unreasonable restrictions on the administration of the private
educational institutions, and that especially in the case of minority
institutions, the right guaranteed to them under Article 30(1) stood
infringed. It was also urged that the object that was sought to be achieved
by the scheme was, in fact, not achieved.
7. On behalf of the private minority institutions, it was submitted that on
the correct interpretation of the various provisions of the Constitution,
and Articles 29 and 30 in particular, the minority institutions have a
right to establish and administer educational institutions of their choice.
The use of the phrase "of their choice" in Article 30(1) clearly postulated
that the religious and linguistic minorities could establish and administer
any type of educational institution, whether it was a school, a degree
college or a professional college; it was argued that such an educational
institution is invariably established primarily for the benefit of the
religious and linguistic minority, and it should be open to such
institutions to admit students of their choice. While Article 30(2) was
meant to ensure that these minority institutions would not be denied aid on
the ground that they were managed by minority institutions, it was
submitted that no condition which curtailed or took away the minority
character of the institution while granting aid could be imposed. In
particular, it was submitted that Article 29(2) could not be applied or so
interpreted as to completely obliterate the right of the minority
institution to grant admission to the students of its own religion or
language. It was also submitted that while secular laws relating to health,
town planning, etc., would be applicable, no other rules and regulations
could be framed that would in any way curtail or interfere with the
administration of the minority educational institution. It was emphasized
by the learned counsel that the right to administer an educational
institution included the right to constitute a governing body, appoint
teachers and admit students. It was further submitted that these were the
essential ingredients of the administration of an educational institution,
and no fetter could be put on the exercise of the right to administer. It
was conceded that for the purpose of seeking recognition, qualifications of
teachers could be stipulated, as also the qualification of the students who
could be admitted; at the same time, it was argued that the manner and mode
of appointment of teachers and selection of students had to be within the
exclusive domain of the autochthonal institution.
8. On behalf of the private non-minority unaided educational institutions,
it was contended that since secularism and equality were part of the basic
structure of the Constitution the provisions of the Constitution should be
interpreted so that the right of the private non-minority unaided
institutions were the same as that of the minority institutions. It was
submitted that while reasonable restrictions could be imposed under Article
19(6), such private institutions should have the same freedom of
administration of an unaided institution as was sought by the minority
unaided institutions.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 4 of 116
9. The learned Solicitor General did not dispute the contention that the
right in establish an institution had been confined on the non-minorities
by Articles 19 and 26 and on the religious and linguistic minorities by
Article 30. He agreed with the submission of the counsels for the
appellants that the Unni Krishnan decision required reconsideration, and
that the private unaided educational institutions were entitled to greater
autonomy. He, however, contended that Article 29(2) was applicable to
minority institutions, and the claim of the minority institutions that they
could preferably admit students of their own religion or language to the
exclusion of the other communities was impermissible. In other words, he
submitted that Article 29(2) made it obligatory even on the minority
institutions not to deny admission on the ground of religion, race, caste,
language or any of them.
10. Several States have totally disagreed with the arguments advanced by
the learned Solicitor General with regard to the applicability of Article
29(2) and 30(1). The States of Madhya Pradesh, Chattisgarh and Rajasthan
have submitted that the words "their choice" in Article 30(1) enabled the
minority institutions to admit members of the minority community, and that
the inability of the minority institutions to admit others as a result of
the exercise of "their choice" would not amount to a denial as contemplated
under Article 29(2). The State of Andhra Pradesh has not expressly referred
to the inter-play between Article 29(2) and Article 30(1), but has stated
that "as the minority educational institutions are intended to benefit the
minorities, a restriction that at least 50 per cent of the students
admitted should come from the particular minority, which has established
the institution should be stipulated as a working rule", and that an
institution which fulfilled the following conditions should be regarded as
minority educational institutions:
1. All the office bearers, members of the executive committee of the
society must necessarily belong to the concerned religious/linguistic
minority without exception.
2. The institution should admit only the concerned minority candidates to
the extent of sanctioned intake permitted to be filed by the respective
managements.
and that the Court "ought to permit the State to regulate the intake in
minority educational institutions with due regard to the need of the
community in the area which the institution is intended to serve. In no
case should such intake exceed 50% of the total admissions every year."
11. The State of Kerala has submitted, again without express reference to
Article 29(2), "that the constitutional right of the minorities should be
extended to professional education also, but while limiting the right of
the minorities to admit students belonging to their community to 50% of the
total intake of each minority institution".
12. The State of Karnataka has submitted that "aid is not a matter of right
but receipt thereof does not in any way dilute the minority character of
the institution. Aid can be distributed on non-discriminatory conditions
but in so far as minority institutions are concerned, their core rights
will have to be protected.
13. On the other hand, the States of Tamil Nadu, Punjab, Maharashtra, West
Bengal, Bihar and Uttar Pradesh have submitted that Article 30(1) is
subject to Article 29(2), arguing that a minority institution availing of
state aid loses the right to admit members of its community on the basis of
the need of the community.
14. The Attorney General, pursuant to the request made by the court, made
submissions on the constitutional issues in a fair and objective manner. We
recorded our appreciation for the assistance rendered by him and the other
learned counsel.
15. We may observe here that the counsels were informed that it was not
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 5 of 116
necessary for this Bench to decide four of the questions framed relating to
the issue of who could be regarded as religious minorities; no arguments
were addressed in respect thereto.
16. From the arguments aforesaid, five main issues arise for consideration
in these cases, which would encompass all the eleven questions framed that
are required to be answered.
17. We will first consider the arguments of the learned counsels under
these heads before dealing with the questions now remaining to be answered.
1. IS THERE A FUNDAMENTAL RIGHT TO SET UP EDUCATIONAL INSTITUTION AND IF
SO, UNDER WHICH PROVISION?
18. With regard to the establishment of educational institutions, three
Articles of the Constitution come into play. Article 19(1)(g) gives the
right to all the citizens to practice any profession or to carry on any
occupation, trade or business; this right is subject to restrictions that
may be placed under Article 19(6). Article 26 gives the right to every
religious denomination to establish and maintain an institution for
religious purposes, which would include an educational institution. Article
19(1)(g) and Article 26, therefore, confer rights on all citizens and
religious denominations to establish and maintain educational institutions.
There was no serious dispute that the majority community as well as
linguistic and religious minorities would have a right under Article 19(1)
(g) and 26 to establish educational institutions. In addition, Article
30(1), in no uncertain terms, gives the right to the religious and
linguistic minorities to establish and administer educational institutions
of their choice.
19. We will first consider the right to establish and administer an
educational institution under Article 19(1)(g) of the Constitution and deal
with the right to establish educational institutions under Article 26 and
30 in the next part of the judgment while considering the rights of the
minorities.
20. Article 19(1)(g) employs four expressions, viz., profession,
occupation, trade and business. Their fields may overlap, but each of them
does have a content of its own. Education is per se regarded as an activity
that is charitable in nature [See The State of Bombay v. R.M.D.
Chamarbaugwala,. Education has so far not been regarded as a trade or
business where profit is the motive. Even if there is any doubt about
whether education is a profession or not, it does appear that education
will fall within the meaning of the expression "occupation". Article 19(1)
(g) uses the four expressions so as to cover all activities of a citizen in
respect of which income or profit is generated, and which can consequently
be regulated under Article 19(6). In Webster’s Third New International
Dictionary at page 1650, "occupation" is, inter alia , defined as "an
activity in which one engages" or "a craft, trade, profession or other
means of earning a living".
21. In Corpus Juris Secundum, Volume LXVII, the word "occupation" is
defined as under:-
"The word "occupation" also is employed as referring to that which occupies
time and attention; a calling; or a trade; and it is only as employed in
this sense that the word is discussed in the following paragraphs.
There is nothing ambiguous about the word "occupation" as it is used in the
sense of employing one’s time. It is a relative term, in common use with a
well-understand meaning, and very broad in its scope and significance. It
is described as a generic and very comprehensive term, which includes every
species of the genus, and compasses the incidental, as well as the main,
requirements of one’s vocation., calling, or business. The word
"occupation" is variously defined as meaning the principal business of
one’s life; the principal or usual business in which a man engages; that
which principally takes up one’s time, thought, and energies; that which
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 6 of 116
occupies or engages the time and attention; that particular business,
profession, trade, or calling which engages the time and efforts of an
individual; the employment in which one engages, or the vocation of one’s
life; the state of being occupied or employed in any way; that activity in
which a person, natural or artificial, is engaged with the element of a
degree of permanency attached."
22. A Five Judge Bench in Sodan Singh and Ors. v. New Delhi Municipal
Committee and Ors. at page 174, para 28, observed as follows:
".....The word occupation has a wide meaning such as any regular work,
profession, job, principal activity, employment, business or a calling in
which an individual is engaged.....The object of using four analogous and
overlapping words in Article 19(1)(g) is to make the guaranteed right as
comprehensive as possible to include all the avenues and modes through
which a man may earn his livelihood. In a nutshell the guarantee takes into
its fold any activity carried on by a citizen of India to earn his
living.....".
23. In Unni Krishnan’s case, at page 687, para 63, while referring to
education, it was observed as follows:-
".....It may perhaps fall under the category of occupation provided no
recognition is sought from the State or affiliation from the University is
asked on the basis that its a fundamental right....."
24. While the conclusion that "occupation" comprehends the establishment of
educational institutions is correct, the proviso in the aforesaid
observation to the effect that this is so provided no recognition is sought
from the state or affiliation from the concerned university is, with the
utmost respect, erroneous. The fundamental right to establish an
educational institution cannot be confused with the right to ask for
recognition of affiliation. The exercise of a fundamental right may be
controlled in a variety of ways. For example, the right to carry on a
business does not entail the right to carry on a business at a particular
place. The right to carry on a business may be subject to licensing laws so
that a denial of the licence presents a person from carrying on that
particular business. The question of whether there is a fundamental right
or not cannot be dependent upon whether it can be made the subject matter
of controls.
25. The establishment and running of an educational institution where a
large number of persons are employed as teachers or administrative staff,
and an activity is carried on that results in the imparting of knowledge to
the students, must necessarily be regarded as an occupation, even if there
is no element of profit generation. It is difficult to comprehended that
education, per se, will not fall under any of the four expressions in
Article 19(1)(g). "Occupation" would be an activity of a person undertaken
as a means of livelihood or a mission in life. The above quoted
observations in Sodan Singh’s case correctly interpret the expression
"occupation" in Article 19(1)(g).
26. The right to establish and maintain educational institutions may also
be sourced to Article 26(a), which grants, in positive terms, the right to
every religious denomination or any section thereof to establish and
maintain institutions for religious and charitable purposes, subject to
public order, morality and health. Education is a recognized head of
charity. Therefore, religious denominations or sections thereof, which do
not fall within the special categories carved out in Article 29(1) and
30(1), have the right to establish and maintain religious and educational
institutions. This would allow members belonging to any religious
denomination, including the majority religious community, to set up an
educational institution. Given this, the phrase "private educational
institution" as used in this judgment would include not only those
educational institutions set up by the secular persons or bodies, but also
educational institutions set up by religious denominations; the word
"private" is
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 7 of 116
used in contradistinction to government institutions.
2. DOES UNNI KRISHNAN’S CASE REQUIRE RECONSIDERATION?
27. In the case of Mohini Jain (Miss) v. State of Karnataka and Ors., the
challenge was to a notification of June 1989, which provided for a fee
structure, whereby for government seats, the tuition fee was Rs. 2, 000 per
annum, and for students from Karnataka, the fee was Rs. 25,000 per annum,
while the fee for Indian students from outside Karnataka, under the payment
category, was Rs. 60,000 per annum. It had been contended that charging
such a discriminatory and high fee violated constitutional guarantees and
rights. This attack was sustained, and it was held that there was a
fundamental right to education in every citizen, and that the state was
duty bound to provide the education, and that the private institutions that
discharge the state’s duties were equally bound not to charge a higher fee
than the government institutions. The Court then held that any prescription
of fee in excess of what was payable in government colleges was a
capitation fee and would, therefore, be illegal. The correctness of this
decision was challenged in Unni Krishnan’s case, where it was contended
that if Mohini Jain’s ratio was applied the educational institutions would
have to be closed down, as they would be wholly unviable without
appropriate funds, by way of tuition fees, from their students.
28. We will now examine the decision in Unni Krishnan’s case. In this case,
this Court considered the conditions and regulations, if any, which the
state could impose in the running of private unaided/aided recognized or
affiliated educational institutions conducting professional courses such a
medicine, engineering, etc. The extent to which the fee could be charged by
such an institution, and the manner in which admissions could be granted
was also considered. This Court held that private unaided
recognized/affiliated educational institutions running professional courses
were entitled to charge a fee higher than that charged by government
institutions for similar courses, but that such a fee could not exceed the
maximum limit fixed by the state. It held that commercialization of
eduction was not permissible, and "was opposed to public policy and Indian
tradition and therefore charging capitation fee was illegal." With regard
to private aided recognized/affiliated educational institutions, the Court
upheld the power of the government to frame rules and regulations in matter
of admission and fees, as well as in matters such a recruitment and
conditions of service of teachers and staff. Though a question was raised
as to whether the setting up of an educational institution could be
regarded as a business, profession or vocation under Article 19(1)(g), this
question was not answered. Jeevan Reddy, J., however, at page 751, para
197, observed as follows:-
".....While we do not wish to express any opinion on the question whether
the right to establish an educational institution can be said to be
carrying on any "occupation" within the meaning of Article 19(1)(g), -
perhaps, it is -- we are certainly of the opinion that such activity can
neither be a trade or business nor can it be a profession within the
meaning of Article 19(1)(g). Trade or business normally connotes an
activity carried on with a profit motive. Education has never been commerce
in this country....."
29. Reliance was placed on a decision of this Court in Bangalore Water
Supply and Sewerage Board v. A. Rajappa and Ors., wherein it had been held
that educational institutions would come within the expression "industry"
in the Industrial Disputes Act, and that, therefore, education would come
under Article 19(1)(g). But the applicability of this decision was
distinguished by Jeevan Reddy, J., observing that "we do not think the said
observation (that education as industry) in a different context has any
application here". While holding, on an interpretation of Articles 21, 41,
45 and 46, that a citizen who had not completed the age of 14 years had a
right to free education, it was held that such a right was not available to
citizens who were beyond the age of 14 years. It was further held that
private educational institutions merely supplemented the effort of the
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 8 of 116
state in educating the people. No private educational institution could
survive or subsist without recognition and/or affiliation granted by bodies
that were the authorities of the state. In such a situation, the Court held
that it was obligatory upon the authority granting recognition/affiliation
to insist upon such conditions as were appropriate to ensure not only an
education of requisite standard, but also fairness and equal treatment in
matter of admission of students. The Court then formulated a scheme and
directed every authority granting recognition/affiliation to impose that
scheme upon institutions seeking recognition/affiliation, even if they were
unaided institutions. The scheme that was framed, inter alia, postulated
(a) that a professional college should be established and/or administered
only by a Society registered under the Societies Registration Act, 1860, or
the corresponding Act of a State, or by a Public Trust registered under the
Trusts Act, or under the Wakfs Act, and that no individual, firm, company
or other body of individuals would be permitted to establish and/or
administer a professional college (b) that 50% of the seats in every
professional college should be filed by the nominees of the Government or
University, selected on the basis of merit determined by a common entrance
examination, which will be referred to as "free seats"; the remaining 50%
seats ("payment seats") should be filled by those candidates who pay the
fee prescribed therefore, and the allotment of students against payment
seats should be done on the basis of inter se merit determined on the same
basis as in the case of free seats (c) that there should be no quota
reserved for the management or for any family, caste or community, which
may have established such a college (d) that it should be open to the
professional college to provide for reservation of sets for
constitutionally permissible classes with the approval of the affiliating
university (e) that the fee chargeable in each professional college should
be subject to such a ceiling as may be prescribed by the appropriate
authority or by a competent court (f) that every state government should
constitute a committee to fix the ceiling on the fees chargeable by a
professional college or class of professional colleges, as the case may be.
This committee should, after hearing the professional colleges, fix the fee
once every three years or at such longer intervals, as it may think
appropriate(g) that it would be appropriate for the University Grants
Commission to frame regulators under its Act regulating the fees that the
affiliated colleges operating on a no grant-in-aid basis were entitled to
charge. The AICTE, the Indian Medical Council and the Central Government
were also given similar advice. The manner in which the seats to be filled
on the basis of the common entrance test was also indicated.
30. The counsel for the minority institutions, as well as the Solicitor
General, have contended that the scheme framed by this Court in Unni
Krishnan’s case was not warranted. It was represented to us that the cost
incurred on educating a student in an unaided professional college was more
than the total fee, which is realized on the basis of the formula fixed in
the scheme. This had resulted in revenue shortfalls. This Court, by interim
orders subsequent to the decision in Unni Krishnan’s case, had permitted,
within the payment seats, some percentage of seats to be allotted to Non-
Resident Indians, against payment of a higher amount as determined by the
authorities. Even thereafter, sufficient funds were not available for the
development of those educational institutions. Another infirmity which was
pointed out was that experience has shown that most of the "free seats"
were generally occupied by students from affluent families, while students
from less affluent families were required to pay much more to secure
admission to "payment seats". This was for the reason that students from
affluent families had had better school education and the benefit of
professional coaching facilities and were, therefore, able to secure higher
merit positions in the common entrance test, and thereby secured the free
seats. The education of these more affluent students was in a way being
cross-subsidized by the financially poorer students who because of their
lower position in the merit list, could secure only "payment seats". It was
also submitted by the counsel for the minority institutions that Unni
Krishnan’s case was not applicable to the minority institutions, but that
notwithstanding this, the scheme to evolved had been made applicable to
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 9 of 116
them as well.
31. Counsel for the institutions, as well as the Solicitor General,
submitted that the decision in Unni Krishnan’s case, insofar as it had
framed the scheme relating to the grant of admission and the fixing of the
fee, was unreasonable and invalid. However, its conclusion that children
below the age of 14 had a fundamental right to free education did not call
for any interference.
32. It has been submitted by the learned counsel for the parties that the
implementation of the scheme by the States, which have amended their rules
and regulations, has shown a number of anomalies. As already noticed, 50%
of the seats are to be given on the basis of merit determined after the
conduct of a common entrance test, the rate of fee being minimal. The
"payment seats" which represent the balance number, therefore, cross-
subsidize the "free seats". The experience of the educational institutions
has been that students who come from private schools, and who belong to
more affluent families, are able to secure higher positions in the merit
list of the common entrance test, and are thus able to seek admission to
the "free seats". Paradoxically, it is the students who come from less
affluent families, who are normally able to secure, on the basis of the
merit list prepared after the common entrance test, only "payment seats".
33. It was contended by petitioned counsel that the implementation of the
Unni Krishnan scheme has in fact (1) helped the privileged from richer
urban families, even after they ceased to be comparatively meritorious, and
(2) resulted in economic losses for the educational institutions concerned,
and made them financially unviable. Data in support of this contention was
placed on record in an effort to persuade this Court to hold that the
scheme had failed to achieve its object.
34. Material has also been placed on the record in an effort to show that
the
total fee realized from the fee fixed for "free seats" and the "payment
seats" is actually less than the amount of expense that is incurred on each
student admitted to the professional college. It is because there was a
revenue shortfall that this Court had permitted in NRI quota to be carved
out of the 50% payment seats for which charging higher fee was permitted.
Directions were given to UGC, AICTE, Medical Council of India and Central
and State governments to regulate or fix a ceiling on fees, and to enforce
the same by imposing conditions of affiliation/permission to establish and
run the institutions.
35. It appears to us that the scheme framed by this Court and thereafter
followed by the governments was one that cannot be called a reasonable
restriction under Article 19(6) of the Constitution. Normally, the reason
for establishing an educational institution is to impart education. The
institution thus needs qualified and experienced teachers and proper
facilities and equipment, all of which require capital investment. The
teachers are required to be paid properly. As pointed out above, the
restrictions imposed by the scheme, in Unni Krishnan’s case, made it
difficult, if not impossible, for the educational institutions to run
efficiently. Thus, such restrictions cannot be said to be reasonable
restrictions.
36. The private unaided educational institutions impart education, and that
cannot be the reason to take away their choice in matters, inter alia, of
selection of students and fixation of fees. Affiliation and recognition has
to be available to every institution that fulfills the conditions for grant
of such affiliation and recognition. The private institutions are right in
submitting that it is not open to the Court to insist that statutory
authorities should impose the terms of the scheme as a condition for grant
of affiliation or recognition; this completely destroys the institutional
autonomy and the very objective of establishment of the institution.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 10 of 116
37. The Unni Krishnan judgment has created certain problems, and raised
thorny issues. In its anxiety to check the commercialization of education,
a scheme of "free" and "payment" seats was evolved on the assumption that
the economic capacity of first 50% of admitted students would be greater
than the remaining 50%, whereas the converse has proved to be the reality.
In this scheme, the "payment seat" student would not only pay for his own
seat, but also finance the cost of a "free seat" classmate. When one
considers the Constitution Bench’s earlier statement that higher education
is not a fundamental right, it seems unreasonable to compel a citizen to
pay for the education of another, more so in the unrealistic world of
competitive examinations which assess the merit for the purpose of
admission solely on the basis of the marks obtained, where the urban
students always have an edge over the rural students. In practice, it has
been the case of the marginally less merited rural or poor student bearing
the burden of a rich and well-exposed urban student.
38. The scheme in Unni Krishnan’s case has the effect of nationalizing
education in respect of important features, viz., the right of a private
unaided institution to give admission and to fix the fee. By framing this
scheme, which has led to the State Governments legislating in conformity
with the scheme the private institutions are undistinguishable from the
government institutions; curtailing all the essential features of the right
of administration of a private unaided educational institution can neither
be called fair or reasonable. Even in the decision in Unni Krishnan’s case,
it has been observed by Jeevan Reddy, J., at page 749, para 194, as
follows:
"The hard reality that emerges is that private educational institutions are
a necessity in the present day context. It is not possible to do without
them because the Governments are in no position to meet the demand -
particularly in the sector of medical and technical education which call
for substantial outlays. While education is one of the most important
functions of the Indian State it has no monopoly therein. Private
educational institutions - including minority educational institutions -
too have a role to play."
39. That private educational instructions are a necessity becomes evident
from the fact that the number of government-maintained professional
colleges has more or less remained stationary, while more private
institutions have been established. For example, in the State of Karnataka
there are 19 medical colleges out of which there are only 4 government-
maintained medical colleges. Similarly, out of 14 Dental Colleges in
Karnataka, only one has been established by the government, while in the
same State, out of 51 Engineering Colleges, only 12 have been established
by the government. The aforesaid figures clearly indicate the important
role played by private unaided educational institutions, both minority and
non-minority, which cater to the needs of students seeking professional
education.
40. Any system of student selection would be unreasonable if it deprives
the private unaided institution of the right of rational selection, which
it devised for itself, subject to the minimum qualification that may be
prescribed and to some system of computing the equivalence between
different kinds of qualifications, like a common entrance test. Such a
system of selection can involve both written and oral tests for selection,
based on principle of fairness.
41. Surrendering the total process of selection to the state is
unreasonable, as was sought to be done in the Unni Krishnan scheme. Apart
from the decision in St. Stephen’s College v. University of Delhi, which
recognized and upheld the right of a minority aided institution to have a
rational admission procedure of its own, earlier Constitution Bench
decision of this Court have, in effect, upheld such a right of an
institution devising a rational manner of selecting and admitting students.
42. In R. Chitralekha and Anr. v. State of Mysore and Ors., while
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 11 of 116
considering the validity of a viva-voce test for admission to a government
medical college, it was observed at page 380 that colleges run by the
government, having regard to financial commitments and other relevant
considerations, would only admit a specific number of students. It had
devised a method for screening the applicants for admission. While
upholding the order so issued, it was observed that "once it is conceded,
and it is not disputed before us, that the State Government can run medical
and engineering colleges, it cannot be denied the power to admit such
qualified students as pass the reasonable tests laid down by it. This is a
power which every private owner of a College will have, and the Government
which runs its own Colleges cannot be denied that power." (emphasis added).
43. Again, in Minor P. Rajendran v. State of Madras and Ors., it was
observed at page 795 that "so far as admission is concerned, it has to be
made by those who are in control of the Colleges, and in this case the
Government, because the medical colleges are Government colleges affiliated
to the University. In these circumstances, the Government was entitled to
frame rules for admission to medical colleges controlled by it subject to
the rules of the university as to eligibility and qualifications." The
aforesaid observations clearly underscore the right of the colleges to
frame rules for admission and to admit students. The only requirement or
control is that the rules for admission must be subject to the rules of the
university as to eligibility and qualifications. The Court did not say that
the university could provide the manner in which the students were to be
selected.
44. In Kumari Chitra Ghosh and Anr. v. Union of India and Ors., dealing
with a government run medical college at pages 232-33, para 9, it was
observed as follows:
"It is the Central Government which bears the financial burden of running
the medical college. It is for it to lay down the criteria for
eligibility....."
45. In view of the discussion hereinabove, we hold that the decision in
Unni Krishnan’s case, insofar as it framed the scheme relating to the grant
of admission and the fixing of the fee, was not correct, and to that
extent, the said decision and the consequent direction given to UGC, AICTE,
Medical Council of India, Central and State Government, etc., are
overruled.
3. IN CASE OF PRIVATE INSTITUTIONS, CAN THERE BE GOVERNMENT REGULATIONS
AND, IF SO, TO WHAT EXTENT?
46. We will now examine the nature and extent of the regulations that can
be framed by the State, University or any affiliating body, while granting
recognition or affiliation to a private educational institution.
47. Private educational institutions, both aided and unaided, are
established and administered by religious and linguistic minorities, as
well as by non-minorities. Such private educational institutions provide
education at three levels, viz., school, college and professional level. It
is appropriate to first deal with the case of private unaided institutions
and private aided institutions that are not administered by linguistic or
religious minorities. Regulations that can be framed relating to minority
institutions will be considered while examining the merit and effect of
Article 30 of the Constitution.
Private Unaided Non-Minority Educational Institutions
48. Private education is one of the most dynamic and fastest growing
segments of post-secondary education at the turn of the twenty-first
century. A combination of unprecedented demand for access to higher
education and the inability or unwillingness of government to provide the
necessary support has brought private higher education to the forefront.
Private institutions, with a long history in many countries, are expanding
in scope and number, and are becoming increasingly important in parts of
the world that relied almost entirely on the public sector.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 12 of 116
49. Not only has demand overwhelmed the ability of the governments to
provide education, there has also been a significant change in the way that
higher education is perceived. The idea of an academic degree as a "private
good" that benefits the individual rather than a "public good" for society
is now widely accepted. The logic of today’s economics and an ideology of
privatization have contributed to the resurgence of private higher
education, and the establishing of private institutions where none or very
few existed before.
50. The right to establish and administer broadly comprises of the
following rights:-
(a) to admit students:
(b) to set up a reasonable fee structure:
(c) to constitute a governing body;
(d) to appoint staff (teaching and non-teaching); and
(e) to take action if there is dereliction of duty on the part of any
employees.
51. A University Education Commission was appointed on 4th November, 1948,
having Dr. S. Radhakrishnan as its Chairman and nine other renowned
educationists as its members. The terms of reference, inter alia, included
matters relating to means and objects of university education and research
in India and maintenance of higher standards of teaching and examining in
universities and colleges under their control. In the report submitted by
this Commission, in paras 29 and 31, it referred to autonomy in education
which reads as follows:-
"University Autonomy. -- Freedom of individual development is the basis of
democracy. Exclusive control of education by the State has been an
important factor in facilitating the maintenance of totalitarian tyrannies.
In such States institutions of higher learning controlled and managed by
governmental agencies act like mercenaries, promote the political purposes
of the State, make them acceptable to an increasing number of their
populations and supply then with the weapons they need. We must resist, in
the interests of our own democracy, the trend towards the governmental
domination of the educational process.
Higher educational is, undoubtedly, an obligation of the State but State
aid is not to be confused with State control over academic policies and
practices. Intellectual progress demands the maintenance of the spirit of
free inquiry. The pursuit and practice of truth regardless of consequences
has been the ambition of universities. Their prayer is that of the dying
Goethe: "More light," or that Ajax in the mist "Light, though I perish in
the light.
xxxxx xxx xxx
The respect in which the universities of Great Britain are held is due to
the freedom from governmental interference which they enjoy
constitutionally and actually. Our universities should be released from the
control of politics.
Liberal Education. -- All education is expected to be liberal. It should
free us from the shackles of ignorance, prejudice and unfounded belief. If
we are incapable of achieving the good life, it is due to faults in our
inward being, to the darkness in us. The process of education is the slow
conquering of this darkness. To lead us from darkness to light, to free us
from every kind of domination except that of reason, is the aim of
education."
52. There cannot be a better exposition than what has been observed by
these renowned educationists with regard to autonomy in education. The
aforesaid passage clearly shows that the governmental domination of the
educational process must be resisted. Another pithy observation of the
Commission was that state aid was not to be confused with state control
over academic policies and practices. The observations referred to
hereinabove clearly contemplate educational institutions soaring to great
heights in pursuit of intellectual excellence and being free from
unnecessary governmental controls.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 13 of 116
53. With regard to the core components of the rights under Article 19 and
26(a), it must be held that while the state has the right to prescribe
qualifications necessary for admission, private unaided colleges have the
right to admit students of their choice, subject to an objective and
rational procedure of selection and the compliance of conditions, if any,
requiring admission of a small percentage of students belonging to weaker
sections of the society by granting them freeships or scholarships, if not
granted by the Government. Furthermore, in setting up a reasonable fee
structure, the element of profiteering is not as yet accepted in Indian
conditions. The fee structure must take into consideration the need to
generate funds to be utilized for the betterment and growth of the
educational institution, the betterment of education in that institution
and to provide facilities necessary for the benefit of the students. In any
event, a private institution will have the right to constitute its own
governing body, for which qualifications may be prescribed by the state or
the concerned university. It will, however, be objectionable if the state
retains the power to nominate specific individuals on governing bodies.
Nomination by the state, which could be on a political basis, will be an
inhibiting factor for private enterprise to embark upon the occupation of
establishing and administering educational institutions. For the same
reasons, nomination of teachers either directly by the department or
through a service commission will be an unreasonable inroad and an
unreasonable restrictions on the attorney of the private unaided
educational institution.
54. The right to establish an educational institution can be regulated; but
such regulatory measures must, in general, be to ensure the maintenance of
proper academic standards, atmosphere and infrastructure (including
qualified staff) and the prevention of mal-administration by those in
charge of management. The fixing of a rigid fee structure, dictating the
formation and composition of a government body, compulsory nomination of
teachers and staff for appointment or nominating
students for admissions would be unacceptable restrictions.
55. The Constitution recognizes the right of the individual or religious
denomination, or a religious or linguistic minority to establish an
educational institution. If aid or financial assistance is not sought, then
such institution will be a private unaided institution. Although, in Unni
Krishnan’s case, the Court emphasized the important role played by private
unaided institutions and the need for private funding, in the scheme that
was framed, restrictions were placed on some of the important ingredients
relating to the functioning of an educational institution. There can be no
doubt that in seeking affiliation or recognition, the Board or the
university or the affiliating or recognizing authority can lay down
conditions consistent with the requirement to ensure the excellence of
education. It can, for instance, indicate the quality of the teachers by
prescribing the minimum qualifications that they must possess, and the
courses of study and curricula. It can, for the same reasons, also
stipulate the existence of infrastructure sufficient for its growth, as a
pre-requisite. But the essence of a private educational institution is the
autonomy that the institution must have in its management and
administration. There, necessarily, has to be a difference in the
administration of private unaided institutions and the government-aided
institutions. Whereas in the latter case, the Government will have greater
say in the administration, including admissions and fixing of fees, in the
case of private unaided institutions, maximum autonomy in the day-to-day
administration has to be with the private unaided institutions.
Bureaucratic or governmental interference in the administration of such an
institution will undermine its independence. While an educational
institution is not a business, in order to examine the degree of
independence that can be given to a recognized educational institution,
like any private entity that does not seek aid or assistance from the
Government, and that exists by virtue of the funds generated by it,
including its loans or borrowings, it is important to note that the
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 14 of 116
essential ingredients of the management of the private institution include
the recruiting students and staff, and the quantum of fee that is to be
charged.
56. An educational institution is established for the purpose of imparting
education of the type made available by the institution. Different courses
of study are usually taught by teachers who have to be recruited as per
qualifications that may be prescribed. It is no secret that better working
conditions will attract better teachers. More amenities will ensure that
better students seek admission to that institution. One cannot lose sight
of the fact that providing good amenities to the students in the form of
competent teaching faculty and other infrastructure costs money. It has,
therefore, to be left to the institution, if it chooses not to seek any aid
from the government, to determine the scale of fee that it can charge from
the students. One also cannot lose sight of the fact that we live in a
competitive world today, where professional education is in demand. We have
been given to understand that a large number of professional and other
institutions have been started by private parties who do not seek any
governmental aid. In a sense a prospective students has various options
open to him/her where, therefore, normally economic forces have a role to
play. The decision on the fee to be charged must necessarily be left to the
private educational institution that does not seek or is not dependent upon
any funds from the government.
57. We, however, wish to emphasize one point, and that is that inasmuch as
the occupation of education is, in a sense, regarded as charitable, the
government can provide regulations that will ensure excellence in
education, while forbidding the charging of capitation fee and profiteering
by the institution. Since the object of setting up an educational
institution is by definition "charitable", it is clear that an educational
institution cannot charge such a fee as is not required for the purpose of
fulfilling that object. To put it differently, in the establishment of an
educational institution, the object should not be to make a profit,
inasmuch as education is essentially charitable in nature. There can,
however, be a reasonable revenue surplus, which may be generated by the
educational institution for the purpose of development of education and
expansion of the institution.
58. For admission into any professional institution, merit must play an
important role. While it may not be normally possible to judge the merit of
the applicant who seeks admission into a school, while seeking admission to
a professional institution and to become a competent professional, it is
necessary that meritorious candidates are not unfairly treated or put at a
disadvantage by preferences shown to less meritorious but more influential
applicants. Excellence in professional education would require that greater
emphasis be laid on the merit of a student seeking admission. Appropriate
regulations for this purpose may be made keeping in view the other
observations made in this judgment in the context of admissions to unaided
institutions.
59. Merit is usually determined, for admission to professional and higher
education colleges, by either the marks that the student obtains at the
qualifying examination or school leaving certificate stage followed by the
interview, or by a common entrance test conducted by the institution, or in
the case of professional colleges, by government agencies.
60. Education is taught at different levels from primary to professional.
It is, therefore, obvious that government regulations for all levels or
types of educational institutions cannot be identical; so also, the extent
of control or regulation could be greater vis-a-vis aided institutions.
61. In the case of unaided private schools, maximum autonomy has to be with
the management with regard to administration, including the right of
appointment, disciplinary powers, admission of students and the fees to be
charged. At the school level, it is not possible to grant admission on the
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 15 of 116
basis of merit. It is no secret that the examination results at all levels
of unaided private schools, notwithstanding the stringent regulations of
the governmental authorities, are far superior to the results of the
government-maintained schools. There is no compulsion on students to attend
private schools. The rush for admission is occasioned by the standards
maintained in such schools, and recognition of the fact that state-run
schools do not provide the same standards of education. The State says that
it has no funds to establish institutions at the same level of excellence
as private schools. But by curtaining the income of such private schools,
it disables those schools from affording the best facilities because of a
lack of funds. If this lowering of standards from excellence to a level of
mediocrity is to be avoided, the state has to provide the difference which,
therefore, brings us back in a vicious circle to the original problem,
viz., the lack of state funds. The solution would appear to lie in the
States not using their scanty resources to prop up institutions that are
able to otherwise maintain themselves out of the fees charged, but in
improving the facilities and infrastructure of state-run schools and in
subsidizing the fees payable by the students there. It is in the interest
of the general public that more good quality schools are established;
autonomy and non-regulation of the school administration in the right of
appointment, admission of the students and the fee to be charged will
ensure that more such institutions are established. The fear that if a
private school is allowed to charge fees commensurate with the fees
affordable, the degrees would be "purchasable" is an unfounded one since
the standards of education can be and are controllable through the
regulations relating to recognition, affiliation and common final
examinations.
62. There is a need for private enterprise in non-professional college
education as well. At present, insufficient number of undergraduate
colleges are being and have been established, one of the inhibiting factors
being that there is a lack of autonomy due to government regulations. It
will not be wrong to presume that the numbers of professional colleges are
growing at a faster rate than the number of undergraduate and non-
professional colleges. While it is desirable that there should be a
sufficient number of professional colleges, it should also be possible for
private unaided undergraduate colleges that are non-technical in nature to
have maximum autonomy similar to a school.
63. It was submitted that for maintaining the excellence of education, it
was important that the teaching faculty and the members of the staff of any
educational institution performed their duties in the manner in which it is
required to be done, according to the rules or instructions. There have
been cases of misconduct having been committed by the teachers and other
members of the staff. The grievance of the institution is that whenever
disciplinary action is sought to be taken in relation to such misconduct,
the rules that are normally framed by the government or the university are
clearly loaded against the Management. It was submitted that in some cases,
the rules require the prior permission of the governmental authorities
before the intimation of the disciplinary proceeding, while in other cases,
subsequent permission is required before the imposition of penalties in the
case of proven misconduct. While emphasizing the need for an independent
authority to adjudicate upon the grievance of the employee or the
Management in the event of some punishment being imposed, it was submitted
that there should be no role for the government or the university to play
in relation to the imposition of any penalty on the employee.
64. An educational institution is established only for the purpose of
imparting education to the students. In such an institution, it is
necessary for all to maintain discipline and abide by the rules and
regulations that have been lawfully framed. The teachers are like foster-
parents who are required to look after, cultivate and guide the students in
their pursuit of education. The teachers and the institution exist for the
students and not vice versa. Once this principle is kept in mind, it must
follow that it becomes imperative for the teaching and other staff of an
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 16 of 116
educational institution to perform their duties properly, and for the
benefit of the students. Where allegations of misconduct are made, it is
imperative that a disciplinary enquiry is conducted, and that a decision is
taken. In the case of a private institution, the relationship between the
Management and the employees is contractual in nature. A teacher, if the
contract so provides, can be proceeded against, and appropriate
disciplinary action can be taken if the misconduct of the teacher is
proved. Considering the nature of the duties and keeping the principle of
natural justice in mind for the purposes of establishing misconduct and
taking action thereon, it is imperative that a fair domestic enquiry is
conducted. It is only on the basis of the result of the disciplinary
enquiry that the management will be entitled to take appropriate action. We
see no reason why the Management of a private unaided educational should
seek the consent or approval of any governmental authority before taking
any such action. In the ordinary relationship of master and servant,
governed by the terms of a contract of employment, anyone who is guilty of
breach of the terms can be proceeded against and appropriately relief can
be sought. Normally, the aggrieved party would approach a court of law and
seek redress. In the case of educational institutions, however, we are of
the opinion that requiring a teacher or a member of the staff to go to a
civil court for the purpose of seeking redress is not in the interest of
general education. Disputes between the management and the staff of
educational institutions must be decided speedily, and without the
excessive incurring of costs. It would, therefore, be appropriate that an
educational Tribunal be set up in each district in a State, to enable the
aggrieved teacher to file an appeal, unless there already exists such an
educational tribunal in a State -- the object being that the teacher should
not suffer through the substantial costs that arise because of the location
of the tribunal; if the tribunals are limited in number, they can hold
circuit/camp sittings in different districts to achieve this objective.
Till a specialized tribunal is set up, the right of filing the appeal would
lie before the District Judge or Additional District Judge as notified by
the government. It will not be necessary for the institution to get prior
permission or ex post facto approval of a governmental authority while
taking disciplinary action against a teacher or any other employee. The
State Government shall determine, in consultation with the High Court, the
judicial forum in which an aggrieved teacher can file an appeal against the
decision of the management concerning disciplinary action or termination of
service.
65. The reputation of an educational institution is established by the
qualify of its faculty and students, and the educational and other
facilities that the colleges has to offer. The private educational
institutions have a personality of their own, and in order to maintain
their atmosphere and traditions, it is but necessary that they must have
the right to choose and select the students who can be admitted to their
courses of studies. If is for this reason that in the St. Stephen’s College
case, this Court upheld the scheme whereby a cut-off percentage was fixed
for admission, after which the students were interviewed and thereafter
selected. While an educational institution cannot grant admission on its
whims and fancies, and must follow some identifiable or reasonable
methodology of admitting the students, any scheme, rule or regulation that
does not give the institution the right to reject candidates who might
otherwise be qualified according to say their performance in an entrance
test, would be an unreasonable restriction under Article 19(6), though
appropriate guidelines/modalities can be prescribed for holding the
entrance test a fair manner. Even when students are required to be selected
on the basis of merit, the ultimate decision to grant admission to the
students who have otherwise qualified for the grant of admission must be
left with the educational institution concerned. However, when the
institution rejects such students, such rejection must not be whimsical or
for extraneous reasons.
66. In the case of private unaided educational institution, the authority
granting recognition or affiliation can certainly lay down conditions for
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 17 of 116
the grant of recognition or affiliation; these conditions must pertain
broadly to academic and educational matters and welfare of students and
teachers - but how the private unaided institutions are to run is a matter
of administration to be taken care of by the Management of those
institutions.
Private Unaided Professional Colleges
67. We now come to the regulations that can be framed relating to private
unaided
professional institutions.
68. It would be unfair to apply the same rules and regulations regulating
admission to both aided and unaided professional institutions. It must be
borne in mind that unaided professional institutions are entitled to
autonomy in their administration while, at the same time, they do not forgo
or discard the principle of merit. It would, therefore, be permissible for
the university or the government, at the time of granting recognition, to
require a private unaided institution to provide for merit-based selection
while, at the same time, giving the Management sufficient discretion in
admitting students. This can be done through various methods. For instance,
a certain percentage of the seats can be reserved for admission by the
Management out of those students who have passed the common entrance test
held by itself or by the State/University and have applied to the college
concerned for admission, while the rest of the seats may be filled up on
the basis of counselling by the state agency. This will incidentally take
care of poorer and backward sections of the society. The prescription of
percentage for this purpose has to be done by the government according to
the local needs and different percentage can be fixed for minority unaided
and non-minority unaided and professional colleges. The same principles may
be applied to other non-professional but unaided educational institutions
viz., graduation and post- graduation non-professional colleges or
institutes.
69. In such professional unaided institutions, the Management will have the
right to select teachers as per the qualifications and eligibility
conditions laid down by the State/University subject to adoption of a
rational procedure of selection. A rational fee structure should be adopted
by the Management, which would not be entitled to charge a capitation fee.
Appropriate machinery can be devised by the state or university to ensure
that no capitation fee is charged and that there is no profiteering, though
a reasonable surplus for the furtherance of education is permissible.
Conditions granting recognition or affiliation can broadly cover academic
and educational matters including the welfare of students and teachers.
70. It is well established all over the world that those who seek
professional education must pay for it. The number of seats available in
government and government-aided colleges is very small, compared to the
number of persons seeking admission to the medical and engineering
colleges. All those eligible and deserving candidates who could not be
accommodated in government colleges would stand deprived of professional
education. This void in the field of medical and technical education has
been filled by institutions that are established in different places with
the aid of donations and the active part taken by public-minded
individuals. The object of establishing an institution has thus been to
provide technical or professional education to the deserving candidates,
and is not necessarily a commercial venture. In order that this intention
is meaningful, the institution must be recognized. At the school level, the
recognition or affiliation has to be sought from the educational authority
or the body that conducts the school-leaving examination. It is only on the
basis of that examination that a school-leaving certificate is granted,
which enables a student to seek admission in further courses of study after
school. A college or a professional educational institution has to get
recognition from the concerned university, which normally requires certain
conditions to be fulfilled before recognition. It has been held that
conditions of affiliation or recognition, which pertain to the academic and
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 18 of 116
educational character of the institution and ensure uniformity, efficiency
and excellence in educational courses are valid, and that they do not
violate even the provisions of Article 30 of the Constitution; but
conditions that are laid down for granting recognition should not be such
as may lead to governmental control of the administration of the private
educational institutions.
Private Aided Professional Institutions (non-minority)
71. While giving aid to professional institutions, it would be permissible
for the authority giving aid to prescribe by rules or regulations, the
conditions on the basis of which admission will be granted to different
aided colleges by virtue of merit, coupled with the reservation policy of
the state. The merit may be determined either through a common entrance
test conducted by the University or the Government followed by counseling,
or on the basis of an entrance test conducted by individual institutions -
the method to be followed is for the university or the government to
decide. The authority may also device other means to ensure that admission
is granted to an aided professional institution on the basis of merit. In
the case of such institutions, it will be permissible for the government or
the university to provide that consideration should be shown to the weaker
sections of the society.
72. Once aid is granted to a private professional educational institution,
the government or the state agency, as a condition of the grant of aid, can
put fetters on the freedom in the matter of administration and management
of the institution. The state, which gives aid to an educational
institution, can impose such conditions as are necessary for the proper
maintenance of the high standards of education as the financial burden is
shared by the state. The state would also be under an obligation to protect
the interest of the teaching and non-teaching staff. In many states, there
are various statutory provisions to regulate the functioning of such
educational institutions where the States give, as a grant or aid, a
substantial proportion of the revenue expenditure including salary, pay and
allowances of teaching and non-teaching staff. It would be its
responsibility to ensure that the teachers working in those institutions
are governed by proper service conditions. The state, in the case of such
aided institutions, has ample power to regulate the method of selection and
appointment of teachers after prescribing requisite qualifications for the
same. Ever since In Re The Kerala Education Bill, 1957 [(1959) SCR 995],
this Court has upheld, in the case of aided institutions, those regulations
that served the interests of students and teachers. Checks on the
administration may be necessary in order to ensure that the administration
is efficient and sound and will serve the academic needs of the
institutions. In other words, rules and regulations that promote good
administration and prevent mal-administration can be formulated so as to
promote the efficiency of teachers, discipline and fairness in
administration and to preserve harmony among affiliated institutions. At
the same time it has to be ensured that even an aided institution does not
become a government-owned and controlled institution. Normally, the aid
that is granted is relatable to the pay and allowances of the teaching
staff. In addition, the Management of the private aided institutions has to
incur revenue and capital expenses. Such aided institutions cannot obtain
that extent of autonomy in relation to management and administration as
would be available to a private unaided institution, but at the same time,
it cannot also be treated as an educational institution departmentally run
by government or as a wholly owned and controlled government institution
and interfere with Constitution of the governing bodies or thrusting the
staff without reference to Management.
Other Aided Institutions
73. There are a large number of educational institutions, like schools and
non-professional colleges, which cannot operate without the support of aid
from the state. Although these institutions may have been established by
philanthropists or other public-spirited persons, it becomes necessary, in
order to provide inexpensive education to the students, to seek aid from
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 19 of 116
the state. In such cases, as those of the professional aided institutions
referred to hereinabove, the Government would be entitled to make
regulations relating to the terms and conditions of employment of the
teaching and non-teaching staff whenever the aid for the posts is given by
the State as well as admission procedures. Such rules and regulations can
also provide for the reasons and the manner in which a teacher or any other
member of the staff can be removed. in other words, the autonomy of a
private aided institution would be less than that of an unaided
institution.
4. IN ORDER TO DETERMINE THE EXISTENCE OF A RELIGIOUS OR LINGUISTIC
MINORITY IN RELATION TO ARTICLE 30, WHAT IS TO BE THE UNIT - THE STATE OR
THE COUNTRY AS A WHOLE?
74. We now consider the question of the unit for the purpose of determining
the definition of "minority" within the meaning of Article 30(1).
75. Article 30(1) deals with religious minorities and linguistic
minorities. The opening words of Article 30(1) make it clear that religious
and linguistic minorities have been put at par, insofar as that Article is
concerned. Therefore, whatever the unit - whether a state or the whole of
India - for determining a linguistic minority, it would be the same in
relation to a religious minority. India is divided into different
linguistic states. The states have been carved out on the basis of the
language of the majority of persons of that region. For example, Andhra
Pradesh was established on the basis of the language of that region. viz.,
Telugu. "Linguistic minority" can, therefore, logically only be in relation
to a particular State. If the determination of "linguistic minority" for
the purpose of Article 30 is to be in relation to the whole of India, then
within the State of Andhra Pradesh, Telugu speakers will have to be
regarded as a "linguistic minority". This will clearly be contrary to the
concept of linguistic states.
76. If, therefore, the state has to be regarded as the unit for determining
"linguistic minority" vis-a-vis Article 30, then with "religious minority"
being on the same footing, it is the state in relation to which the
majority or minority status will have to be determined.
77. In the Kerala Education Bill case, the question as to whether the
minority community was to be determined on the basis of the entire
population of India, or on the basis of the population of the State forming
a part of the Union was posed at page 1047. It had been contended by the
State of Kerala that for claiming the status of minority, the persons must
numerically be a minority in the particular region in which the education
institution was situated, and that the locality or ward or town where the
institution was to be situated had to be taken as the unit to determine the
minority community. No final opinion on this question was expressed, but it
was observed at page 1050 that as the Kerala Education Bill "extends to the
whole of the State of Kerala and consequently the minority must be
determined by reference to the entire population of that State."
78. In two cases pertaining to the DAV College, this Court had to consider
whether the Hindus were a religious minority in the State of Punjab. In
D.A.V. College v. State of Punjab and Ors. [1971 (Supp.) SCR 688], the
question posed was as to what constituted a religious or linguistic
minority, and how it was to be determined. After examining the opinion of
this Court in the Kerala Education Bill case, the Court held that the Arya
Samajis, who were Hindus, were a religious minority in the State of Punjab,
even though they may not have been so in relation to the entire country. In
another case, D.A.V. College Bhatinda v. State of Punjab and Ors. [1971
(Supp.) SCR 677], the observations in the first D.A.V. College case were
explained, and at page 681, it was stated that "what constitutes a
linguistic or religious minority must be judged in relation to the State
inasmuch as the impugned Act was a State Act and not in relation to the
whole of India." The Supreme Court rejected the contention that since
Hindus were a majority in India, they could not be a religious minority in
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 20 of 116
the state of Punjab, as it took the state as the unit to determine whether
the Hindus were a minority community.
79. There can, therefore, be little doubt that this Court has consistently
held that, with regard to a state law, the unit to determine a religious or
linguistic minority can only be the state.
80. The Forty-Second Amendment to the Constitution included education in
the Concurrent List under Entry 25. Would this in any way change the
position with regard to the determination of a "religious" or "linguistic
minority" for the purposes of Article 30?
81. As a result of the insertion of Entry 25 into List III, Parliament can
now legislate in relation to education, which was only a state subject
previously. The jurisdiction of the Parliament is to make laws for the
whole or a part of India. It is well recognized that geographical
classification is not violative of Article 14. It would, therefore, be
possible that, with respect to a particular State or group of States,
Parliament may legislate in relation to education. However, Article 30
gives the right to a linguistic or religious minority of a State to
establish and administer educational institutions of their choice. The
minority for the purpose of Article 30 cannot have different meanings
depending upon who is legislating. Language being the basis for the
establishment of different states for the purposes of Article 30 a
"linguistic minority" will have to be determined in relation to the state
in which the educational institution is sought to be established. The
position with regard to the religious minority is similar, since both
religious and linguistic minorities have been put at par in Article 30.
5. TO WHAT EXTENT CAN THE RIGHTS OF AIDED PRIVATE MINORITY INSTITUTIONS TO
ADMINISTER BE REGULATED?
82. Article 25 give to all persons the freedom of conscience and the right
to freely profess, practice and propagate religion. This right, however, is
not absolute. The opening words of Article 25(1) make this right subject to
public order, morality and health, and also to the other provisions of Part
III of the Constitution. This would mean that the right given to a person
under 25(1) can be curtailed or regulated if the exercise of that right
would violate other provisions of Part III of the Constitution, or if the
exercise thereof is to in consonance with public order, morality and
health. The general law made by the government contains provisions relating
to public order, morality and health; these would have to be complied with,
and cannot be violated by any person in exercise of his freedom of
conscience or his freedom to profess, practice and propagate religion. For
example, a person cannot propagate his religion in such a manner as to
denigrate another religion or bring about dissatisfaction amongst people.
83. Article 25(2) gives specific power to the state to make any law
regulating or restricting any economic, financial, political or other
secular activity, which may be associated with religious practice as
provided by Sub-clause (a) of Article 25(2). This is a further curtailment
of the right to profess, practice and propagate religion conferred on the
persons under Article 25(1). Article 25(2)(a) covers only a limited area
associated with religious practice, in respect of which a law can be made.
A careful reading of Article 25(2)(a) indicates that it does not prevent
the State from making any law in relation to the religious practice as
such. The limited jurisdiction granted by Article 25(2) relates to the
making of a law in relation to economic, financial, political or other
secular activities associated with the religious practice.
84. The freedom to manage religious affairs is provided by Article 26. This
Article gives the right to every religious denomination, or any section
thereof, to exercise the rights that it stipulates. However, this right has
to be exercised in a manner that is in conformity with public order,
morality and health. Clause (a) of Article 26 gives a religious
denomination the right to establish and maintain institutions for religious
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 21 of 116
and charitable purposes. There is no dispute that the establishment of an
educational institution comes within the meaning of the expression
"charitable purpose". Therefore, while Article 25(1) grants the freedom of
conscience and the right to profess, practice and propagate religion,
Article 26 can be said to be complementary to it, and provides for every
religious denomination, or any section thereof, to exercise the rights
mentioned therein. This is because Article 26 does not deal with the right
of an individual, but is confined to a religious denomination. Article 26
refers to a denomination of any religion, whether it is a majority or a
minority religion, just as Article 25 refers to all persons, whether they
belong to the majority or a minority religion. Article 26 gives the right
to majority religious denominations, as well as to minority religious
denominations, to exercise the rights contained therein.
85. Secularism being one of the important basic features of our
Constitution, Article 27 provides that no person shall be compelled to pay
any taxes, the proceeds of which are specifically appropriated for the
payment of expenses for the promotion and maintenance of any particular
religion or religions denomination. The manner in which the Article has
been framed does not prohibit the state from enacting a law to incur
expenses for the promotion or maintenance of any particular religion or
religious denomination, but specifies that by that law, no person can be
compelled to pay any tax, the proceeds of which are to be so utilized. In
other words, if there is a tax for the promotion or maintenance of any
particular religion or religious denomination, no person an be compelled to
pay any such tax.
86. Article 28(1) prohibits any educational institution, which is wholly
maintained out of state funds, to provide for religious instruction. Moral
education dissociation from any demoninational doctrine is not prohibited;
but, as the state is intended to be secular, an educational institution
wholly maintained out of state funds cannot impart or provide for any
religious instruction.
87. The exception to Article 28(1) is contained in Article 28(2). Article
28(2) deals with cases where, by an endowment or trust, an institution is
established, and the terms of the endowment or the trust require the
imparting of religious instruction, and where that institution is
administered by the state. In such a case, the prohibition contained in
Article 28(1) does not apply. If the administration of such an institution
is voluntarily given to the government, or the government, for a good
reason and in accordance with law, assumes or takes over the management of
that institution, say on account of mal-administration, then the
government, on assuming the administration of the institution, would be
obliged to continue with the imparting of religious instruction as provided
by the endowment or the trust.
88. While Article 28(1) and Article 28(2) relate to institutions that are
wholly maintained out of state funds, Article 28(3) deals with an
educational institution that is recognized by the state or receives aid out
of state funds. Article 28(3) gives the person attending any educational
institution the right not to take part in any religious instruction, which
may be imparted by an institution recognized by the state, or receiving aid
from the state. Such a person also has the right not to attend any
religious worship that may be conducted in such an institution, or in any
premises attached thereto, unless such a person, or if he/she is a minor,
his/her guardian, has given his/her consent. The reading of Article 28(3)
clearly shows that no person attending an educational institution can be
required to take part in any religious instruction or any religious
worship, unless the person or his/her guardian has given his/her consent
thereto, in a case where the educational institution has been recognized by
the state or receives aid out of its funds. We have seen that Article 26(a)
gives the religious denomination the right to establish an educational
institution, the religious denomination being either of the majority
community or minority community. In any institution, whether established by
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 22 of 116
the majority or a minority religion, if religious instruction in imparted,
no student can be compelled to take part in the said religious instruction
or in any religious worship. An individual has the absolute right not to be
compelled to take part in any religious instruction or worship. Article
28(3) thereby recognizes the right of an individual to practice or profess
his own religion. In other words, in matters relating to religious
instruction or worship, there can be no compulsion where the educational
institution is either recognized by the state or receives aid from the
state.
89. Articles 29 and 30 are a group of articles relating to cultural and
educational rights. Article 29(1) gives the right to any section of the
citizens residing in India or any part thereof, and having a distinct
language, script or culture of its own, to conserve the same. Article 29(1)
does not refer to any religion, even though the marginal note of the
Article mentions the interests of minorities. Article 29(1) essentially
refers to sections of citizens who have a distinct language script or
culture, even though their religion may not be the same. The common thread
that runs through Article 29(1) in language, script or culture, and not
religion. For example, if in any part of the country, there is a section of
society that has a distinct language, they are entitled to conserve the
same, even though the persons having that language may profess different
religions. Article 29(1) gives the right to all sections of citizens,
whether they are in a minority or the majority religions, to conserve their
language, script or culture.
90. In the exercise of this right to converse the language, script or
culture, that section of the society can set up educational institutions.
The right to establish and maintain institutions of its choice is a
necessary concomitant to the right conferred by Article 30. The right under
Article 30 is not absolute. Article 29(2) provides that, where any
educational institution is maintained by the state or receives aid out of
state funds no citizen shall be denied admission on the grounds only of
religion, race, caste, language or any of them. The use of the expression
"any educational institution" in Article 29(2) would refer to any
educational institution established by anyone, but which is maintained by
the state or receives aid out of state funds. In other words, on a plain
reading, state-maintained or aided educational institutions, whether
established by the Government or the majority or a minority community
cannot deny admission to a citizen on the grounds only of religion, race,
caste or language.
91. The right of the minorities to establish and administer educational
institutions is provided for by Article 30(1). To some extent, Article
26(1)(a) and Article 30(1) overlap, insofar as they relate to the
establishment of educational institutions but whereas Article 26 gives the
right both to the majority as well as minority communities to establish and
maintain institutions for charitable purposes, which would inter alia,
include educational institutions, Article 30(1) refers to the right of
minorities to establish and maintain educational institutions of their
choice. Another difference between Article 26 and Article 30 is that
whereas Article 26 refers only to religious denominations, Article 30
contains the right of religious as well as linguistic minorities to
establish and administer educational institutions of their choice.
92. Article 30(1) bestows on the minorities, whether based on religion or
language, the right to establish and administer educational institution of
their choice. Unlike Article 25 and 26, Article 30(1) does not specifically
state that the right under Article 30(1) is subject to public order,
morality and health or to other provisions of Part III. This Sub-Article
also does not specifically mention that the right to establish and
administer a minority educational institution would be subject to any rules
or regulations.
93. Can Article 30(1) be so read as to mean that it contains an absolute
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 23 of 116
right of the minorities, whether based on religion or language, to
establish and administer educational institutions in any manner they
desire, and without being obliged to comply with the provisions of any law?
Des Article 30(1) give the religious or linguistic minorities a right to
establish an educational institution that propagates religious or racial
bigotry or ill will amongst the people? Can the right under Article 30(1)
be so exercised that it is opposed to public morality or health? In the
exercise of its right, would the minority while establishing educational
institutions not be bound by town planning rules and regulations? Can they
construct and maintain buildings in any manner they desire without
complying
with the provisions of the building by-laws or health regulations?
94. In order to interpret Article 30 and its interplay, it any, with
Article 29, our attention was drawn to the Constituent Assembly Debates.
While referring to them, the learned Solicitor General submitted that the
provisions of Article 29(2) were intended to be applicable to minority
institutions seeking protection of Article 30. He argued that if any
educational institution sought aid, it could not deny admission only on the
ground of religion, race, caste or language and, consequently giving a
preference to the minority over more meritorious non- minority students was
impermissible. It is now necessary to refer to some of the decisions of
this Court insofar as they interpret Articles 29 and 30, and to examine
whether any creases therein need ironing out.
95. In The State of Madras v. Srimathi Champakam Dorairajan [(1951) SCR
525] the State had issued an order, which provided that admission to
students to engineering and medical colleges in the State should be decided
by the Selection Committee strictly on the basis of the number of seats
fixed for different communities. While considering the validity of this
order this Court interpreted Article 29(2) and held that if admission was
refused only on the grounds of religion, race, caste, language or any of
them, then there was a clear breach of the fundamental right under Article
29(2). The said order was construed as being violative of Article 29(2),
because students who did not fall in the particular categories were to be
denied admission. In this connection it was observed as follows:-
".....So far as those seats are concerned, the petitioners are denied
admission into any of them, not on any ground other than the sole ground of
their being Brahmins and not being members of the community for whom those
reservations were made....."
96. This government order was held to be violative of the Constitution and
constitutive of a clear breach of Article 29(2). Article 30 did not come up
for consideration in that case.
97. In The State of Bombay v.Bombay Education Society and Ors., the State
had issued a circular, the operative portion of which directed that no
primary or secondary school could, from the date of that circular admit to
a class where English was used as a medium of instruction, any pupil other
than pupils belonging to a section of citizens, the language of whom was
English, viz, Anglo-Indians and citizens of non-Asiatic descent. The
validity of the circular was challenged while admission was refused, inter
alia, to a member of the Gujarati Hindu Community. A number of writ
petitions were filed and the High Court allowed them. In an application
filed by the State of Bombay, this Court had to consider whether the said
circular was ultra vires Article 29(2). In deciding this question, the
Court analyzed the provisions of Articles 29(2) and 30, and repelled the
contention that Article 29(2) guaranteed the right only to the citizens of
the minority group. It was observed, in this connection, at page 579, as
follows:
".....The language of Article 29(2) is wide and unqualified and may well
cover all citizens whether they belong to the majority or minority group.
Article 15 protects all citizens against the State whereas the protection
of Article 29(2) extends against the State or anybody who denies the right
conferred by it. Further Article 15 protects all citizens against
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 24 of 116
discrimination generally but Article 29(2) is a protection against a
particular species of wrong namely denial of admission into educational
institutions of the specified kind. In the next place Article 15 is quite
general and wide in its terms and applies to all citizens, whether they
belong to the majority or minority groups, and gives protection to all the
citizens against discrimination by the State on certain specific grounds.
Article 29(2) confers a special right on citizens for admission into
educational institutions maintained or aided by the State. To limit this
right only to citizens belonging to minority groups will be to provide a
double protection for such citizens and to hold that the citizens of the
majority group have no special educational rights in the nature of a right
to be admitted into an educational institution for the maintenance of which
they make contributions by way of taxes. We see no cogent reason for such
discrimination. The heading under which Articles 29 and 30 are grouped
together - namely "Cultural and Educational Rights" is quite general and
does not in terms contemplate such differentiation. If the fact that the
institution is maintained or aided out of State funds is the basis of this
guaranteed right then all citizens, irrespective of whether they belong to
the majority or minority groups; are alike entitled to the protection of
this fundamental right....."
98. It is clear from the aforesaid discussion that this Court came to the
conclusion that in the case of minority educational institutions to which
protection was available under Article 30, the provisions of Article 29(2)
were indeed applicable. But, it may be seen that the question in the
present from i.e., whether in the matter of admissions into aided minority
educational institutions, minority students could be preferred to a
reasonable extent, keeping in view the special protection given under
Article 30(1), did not arise for consideration in that case.
99. In the Kerala Education Bill case, this Court again had the occasion to
consider the interplay of Articles 29 and 30 of the Constitution. This case
was a reference under Article 143(1) of the Constitution made by the
President of India to obtain the opinion of this Court on certain questions
relating to the constitutional validity of some of the provisions of the
kerala Education Bill, 1957, which had been passed by the Kerala
Legislative Assembly, but had been reserved by the Governor for the
consideration of the President. Clause 3(5) of the Bill, made the
recognition of new schools subject to the other provisions of the Bill and
the rules framed by the Government under Clause (36); Clause (15)
authorized the Government to acquire any category of schools; Clause 8(3)
made it obligatory on all aided schools to hand over the fees to the
Government; Clauses 9 to 13 made provisions for the regulation and
management of the schools, payment of salaries to teachers and the terms
and conditions of their appointment, and Clause (33) forbade the granting
of temporary injunctions and interim orders in restraint of proceedings
under the Act.
100. With reference to Article 29(2), the Court observed at page 1055,
while dealing with an argument based on Article 337 that "likewise Article
29(2) provides, inter alia, that no citizen shall be denied admission into
any educational institution receiving did out of State funds on grounds
only of religion, race, caste, language or any of them". Referring to Part
III of the Constitution and to Articles 19 and 25 to 28 in particular, the
Court said:-
".....Under Article 25 all persons are equally entitled, subject to public
order, morality and health and to the other provisions of Part III, to
freedom of conscience and the right freely to profess, practise and
propagate religion. Article 26 confers the fundamental right to every
religious denomination or any section thereof, subject to public order,
morality and health, to establish and maintain institutions for religious
and charitable purposes, to manage its own affairs in matters of religion,
to acquire property and to administer such property in accordance with law.
The ideal being to constitute India into a secular State, no religious
instruction is, under Article 28(1), to be provided in any educational
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 25 of 116
institution wholly maintained out of State funds and under Clause (3) of
the same Article no person attending any educational institution recognized
by the State or receiving aid out of State funds is to be required to take
part in any religious instruction that may be imparted in such institution
or to attend any religious worship that may be conducted in such
institution or in any premises attached thereto unless such person or, if
such person is a minor, his guardian has given his consent thereto. Article
29(1) confers on any section of the citizens having a distinct language,
script or culture of its own to have the right of conserving the same.
Clause (2) of that Article provides that no citizen shall be denied
admission into any educational institution maintained by the State or
receiving aid out of State funds on grounds only of religion, race, caste,
language or any of them."
101. Dealing with Articles 29 and 30 at page 1046, it was observed as
follows:-
"Articles 29 and 30 are set out in Part III of our Constitution which
guarantees our fundamental rights. They are grouped together under the sub-
head "Cultural and Educational Rights". The text and the marginal notes of
both the Articles show that their purpose is to confer those fundamental
rights on certain sections of the community which constitute minority
communities. Under clause (1) of Article 29 any section of the citizens
residing in the territory of India or any part thereof having a distinct
language, script or culture of its own has the right to conserve the same.
It is obvious that a minority community can effectively conserve its
language, script or culture by and through educational institutions and,
therefore, the right to establish and maintain educational institutions of
its choice is a necessary concomitant to the right to conserve its
distinctive language, script or culture and that is what is conferred on
all minorities by Article 30(1) which has hereinbefore been quoted in full.
This right, however, is subject to Clause 2 or Article 29 which provides
that no citizen shall be denied admission into any educational institution
maintained by the State or receiving aid out of State funds on grounds only
of religion, race, caste, language or any of them."
102. It had been, inter alia, contended on behalf of the state that if a
single member of any other community is admitted in a school establish for
a particular minority community, then the education institution would cease
to be an educational institution established by that particular minority
community. It was contended that because of Article 29(2), when an
educational institution established by a minority community gets aid, it
would be precluded from denying admission to members of other communities
because of Article 29(2), and that as a consequence thereof, it would cease
to be an educational institution of the choice of the minority community
that established it. Repelling this argument, it was observed at pages
1051-51, as follows:-
".....This argument does not appear to us to be warranted by the language
of the Article itself. There is no such limitation in Article 30(1) and to
accept this limitation will necessarily involve the addition of the words
"for their own community" in the Article which is ordinarily not
permissible according to well established rules of interpretation. Nor is
it reasonable to assume that the purpose of Article 29(2) was to deprive
minority educational institutions of the aid they receive from the State.
To say that an institution which receives aid on account of its being
minority educational institution must not refuse to admit any member of any
other community only on the grounds therein mentioned and then to say that
as soon as such institution admit such an outsider it will cease to be a
minority institution is tentamount to saying that minority institutions
will not, as minority institutions, be entitled to any aid. The real import
of Article 29(2) and Article 30(1) seems to us to be that they clearly
contemplate a minority institution with a sprinkling of outsiders admitted
into it. By admitting a non-member into it the minority institution does
not shed its character and cease to be a minority institution. Indeed the
object of conservation of the distinct language, script and culture of a
minority may be better served by propagating the same amongst non-members
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 26 of 116
of the particular minority community. In our opinion, it is not possible to
read this condition into Article 30(1) of the Constitution."
103. It will be seen that the use of the expression "sprinkling of
outsiders" in that case clearly implied the applicability of Article 29(2)
to Article 30(1); the Court held that when a minority educational
institution received aid, outsiders would have to be admitted. This part of
the state’s contention was accepted, but what was rejected was the
contention that by taking outsiders, a minority institution would cease to
be an educational institution of the choice of the minority community that
established it. The Court concluded at page 1062, as follows:-
"...We have already observed that Article 30(1) gives two rights to the
minorities, (1) to establish and (2) to administer, educational
institutions of their choice. The right to administer cannot obviously
include the right to maladminister. The minority cannot surely ask for aid
or recognition for an educational institution run by them in unhealthy
surroundings, without any competent teachers, possessing any semblance of
qualification, and which does not maintain even a fair standard of teaching
or which teaches matters subversive of the welfare of the scholars. It
stands to reason, then, that the constitutional right to administer an
educational institution of their choice does not necessarily militate
against the claim of the State to insist that in order to grant aid the
State may prescribe reasonable regulations to ensure the excellence of the
institutions to be aided....."
104. While noting that Article 30 referred not only to religious minorities
but also to linguistic minorities, it was held that the Article gave those
minorities the right to establish educational institutions of their choice,
and that no limitation could be placed on the subjects to be taught at such
educational institutions and that general secular education is also
comprehended within the scope of Article 30(1). It is to be noted that the
argument addressed and answered in that case was whether a minority aided
institution loses its character as such by admitting non-minority students
in terms of Article 29(2). It was observed that the admission of
’sprinkling of outsiders’ will not deprive the institution of its minority
status. The opinion expressed therein does not really go counter to the
ultimate view taken by us in regard to the inter-play of Articles 30(1) and
29(2)
105. In Rev. Sidhajbhai Sabhai and Ors. v. State of Bombay and Anr., this
Court had to consider the validity of an order issued by the Government of
Bombay whereby from the academic year 1955-56, 80% of the seats in the
training colleges for teachers in non-government training colleges were to
be reserved for the teachers nominated by the Government. The petitioner,
who belonged to the minority community, were, inter alia, running a
training college for teachers, as also primary schools. The said primary
schools and college were conducted for the benefit of the religious
denomination of the United Church of Northern India and Indian Christians
generally, though admission was not denied to students belonging to other
communities. The petitioners challenged the government order requiring 80%
of the seats to be filled by nominees of the government, inter alia, on the
ground that the petitioners were members of a religious denomination and
that they constituted a religious minority, and that the educational
institutions had been established primarily for the benefit of the
Christian community. It was the case of the petitioners that the decision
of the Government violated their fundamental rights guaranteed by Articles
30(1), 26(a), (b), (c) and (d), and 19(1)(f) and (g). While interpreting
Article 30, it was observed by this Court at pages 849-850 as under:-
"....All minorities, linguistic or religious have by Article 30(1) an
absolute right to establish and administer educational institutions of
their choice; and any law or executive direction which seeks to infringe
the substance of that right under Article 30(1) would to that extent to
void. This, however, is not to say that it is not open to the State to
impose regulations upon the exercise of this right. The fundamental freedom
is to establish and to administer educational institutions: it is a right
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 27 of 116
to establish and administer what are in truth educational institutions,
institutions which cater to the educational needs of the citizens, or
sections thereof. Regulation made in the true interests of efficiency of
instruction, discipline, health, sanitation, morality, public order and the
like may undoubtedly be imposed. Such regulations are not restrictions on
the substance of the right which is guaranteed: they secure the proper
functioning of the institution, in matters educational."
106. While coming to the conclusion that the right of the private training
colleges to admit students of their choice was severely restricted, this
Court referred to the opinion in the Kerala Education Bill case, but
distinguished it by observing that the Court did not, in that case, lay
down any test of reasonableness of the regulation. No general principle on
which the reasonableness of a regulation may be tested was sought to be
laid down in the Kerala Education Bill case and, therefore, it was held in
Sidhajbhai Sabhai’s case that the opinion in that case was not an authority
for the proposition that all regulative measures, which were not
destructive or annihilative of the character of the institution established
by the minority, provided the regulations were in the national or public
interests, were valid. In this connection it was further held at page 856,
as follows:-
"The right established by Article 30(1) is a fundamental right declared in
terms absolute. Unlike the fundamental freedoms guaranteed by Article 19,
it is not subject to reasonable restrictions. It is intended to be a real
right for the protection of the minorities in the matter of setting up of
educational institutions of their own choice. The right is intended to be
effective and is not to be whittled down by so-called regulative measures
conceived in the interest not of the minority educational institution, but
of the public or the nation as a whole. If every order which while
maintaining the formal character of a minority institution destroys the
power of administration is held justifiable because it is in the public or
national interests, though not in its interest as an educational
institution, the right guaranteed by Article 30(1) will be but a "teasing
illusion", a promise of unreality. Regulations which may lawfully be
imposed either by legislative or executive action as a condition of
receiving grant or of recognition must be directed to making the
institution while retaining its character as a minority institution
effective as an educational institution. Such regulation must satisfy a
dual test - the test of reasonableness, and the test that it is regulative
of the educational character of the institution and is conducive to making
the institution an effective vehicle of education for the minority
community or other persons who resort to it."
107. The aforesaid decision does indicate that the right under Article
30(1) is not so absolute as to prevent the government from making any
regulation whatsoever. As already noted hereinabove, in Sidhajbhai Sabhai’s
case, it was laid down that regulations made in the true interests of
efficiency of instruction, discipline, health, sanitation, morality and
public order could be imposed. If this is so, it is difficult to appreciate
how the government can be prevented from framing regulations that are in
the national interest, as it seems to be indicated in the passage quoted
hereinabove. Any regulation framed in the national interest must
necessarily apply to all educational institutions, whether run by the
majority or the minority. Such a limitation must necessarily be read into
Article 30. The right under Article 30(1) cannot be such as to override the
national interest or to prevent the government from framing regulations in
that behalf. It is, of course, true that government regulations cannot
destroy the minority character of the institution or make the right to
establish and administer a mere illusion; but the right under Article 30 is
not so absolute as to be above the law. It will further be seen that in
Sidhajbhai Sabhai’s case, no reference was made to Article 29(2) of the
Constitution. This decision, therefore, cannot be an authority for the
proposition canvassed before us.
108. Out attention was invited to the decision in Rev. Father W. Proost and
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 28 of 116
Ors. v. The State of Bihar and Ors., but the said case has no application
here. In that case, it was contended, on behalf of the State of Bihar, that
as the protection to the minority under Article 29(1) was only a right to
conserve a distinct language, script or culture of its own, the college did
not qualify for the protection of Article 30(1) because it was not founded
to conserve them and that consequently, it was open to all sections of the
people. The question, therefore, was whether the college could claim the
protection of Section 48-B of the Bihar Universities Act read with Article
30(1) of the Constitution, only if it proved that the educational
institution was furthering the rights mentioned in Article 29(1). Section
48-B of the Bihar Universities Act exempted a minority educational
institution based on religion or language from the operation of some of the
other provisions of that Act. This Court, while construing Article 30, held
that its width could not be cut down by introducing in it considerations on
which Article 29(1) was based. Article 29(1) and 30(1) were held to create
two separate rights, though it was possible that they might meet in a given
case. While dealing with the contention of the state that the college would
not be entitled to the protection under Article 30(1) because it was open
to all sections of the people, the Court referred to the observations in
the Kerala Education Bill case, wherein it had been observed that the real
import of Article 29(2) and Article 30(1) was that they contemplated a
minority institution with a sprinkling of outsiders admitted into it. The
Court otherwise had no occasion to deal with the applicability of Article
29(2) to Article 30(1).
109. In State of Kerala, Etc. v. Very Rev. Mother Provincial, Etc. [(1971)
1 SCR 734], the challenge was to various provisions of the Kerala
University Act, 1969, whose provisions effected private colleges,
particularly those founded by minority communities in the State of Kerala.
The said provisions, inter alia, sought to provide for the manner in which
private colleges were to be administered through the constitution of the
governing body or managing councils in the manner provided by the Act.
Dealing with Article 30, it was observed at pages 739-40 as follows:-
"Article 30(1) has been construed before by this Court. Without referring
to those cases it is sufficient to say that the clause contemplates two
rights which are separated in point of time. The first right is the initial
right to establish institutions of the minority’s choice. Establishment
here means the bringing into being of an institution and it must be by a
minority community. It matters not if a single philanthropic individual
with his own means, founds the institution or the community at large
contributes the funds. The position in law is the same and the intention in
either case must be to found an institution for the benefit of a minority
community by a member of that community. It is equally irrelevant that in
addition to the minority community others from other minority communities
or even from the majority community can take advantage of these
institutions. Such other communities bring in income and they do not have
to be turned away to enjoy the protection.
The next part of the right relates to the administration of such
institutions. Administration means ’management of the affairs’ of the
institution. This management must be free of control so that the founders
or their nominees can mould the institution as they think fit, and in
accordance with their ideas of how the interest of the community in general
and the institution in particular will be best served. No part of this
management can be taken away and vested in another body without an
encroachment upon the guaranteed right."
The Court, however, pointed out that an exception to the right under
Article 30 was the power with the state to regulate education, educational
standards and allied matters. It was held that the minority institutions
could not be allowed to fall below the standards of excellence expected of
educational institutions or under guise of the exclusive right of
management, allowed to decline to follow general pattern. The Court stated
that while the management must be left to minority, they may be compelled
to keep in step with others.
110. The interplay of Article 29 and Article 30 came up for consideration
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 29 of 116
again before this Court in the D.A.V. College case [1971 (Supp.) SCR 688].
Some of the provisions of the Guru Nanak University Act established after
the reorganization of the State of Punjab in 1969 provided for the manner
in which the governing body was to be constituted; the body was to include
a representative of the University and a member of the College. These and
some other provisions were challenged on the ground that they were
violative of Article 30. In this connection at page 695, it was observed as
follows:-
"It will be observed that Article 29(1) is wider than Article 30(1), in
that, while any Section of the citizens including the minorities, can
invoke the rights guaranteed under Article 29(1), the rights guaranteed
under Article 30(1) are only available to the minorities based on religion
or language. It is not necessary for Article 30(1) that the minority should
be both a religion minority as well as a linguistic minority. It is
sufficient if it is one or the other or both. A reading of these two
Articles together would lead us to conclude that a religious or linguistic
minority has a right to establish and administer educational institutions
of its choice for effectively conserving its distinctive language, script
or culture, which right however is subject to the regulatory power of the
State for maintaining and facilitating the excellence of its standards.
This right is further subject to Clause (2) of Article 29 which provides
that no citizen shall be denied admission into any educational institution
which is maintained by the State or receives aid out of State funds, on
grounds only of religion, race, caste, language or any of them. While this
is so these two articles are not inter-linked nor does it permit of their
being always read together."
Though it was observed that Article 30(1) is subject to 29(2), the question
whether the preference to minority students is altogether excluded, was not
considered.
111. One of the questions that arose in this case was as to whether the
petitioner was a minority institution. In this case, it was also observed
that the Hindus of Punjab were a religion minority in the State of Punjab
and that, therefore, they were entitled to the protection of Article 30(1).
Three of the provisions, which were sought to be challenged as being
violative of Article 30, were Clauses 2(1), 17 and 18 of the Statutes
framed by the University under Section 19 of the University Act. Clause
2(1)(a) provided that, for seeking affiliation, the college was to have a
governing body of not more than 20 persons approved by the Senate and
including, amongst others, two representatives of the University and a
member of the College. Clause 17 required the approval of the Vice-
Chancellor for the staff initially appointed by the College. The said
provision also provided that all subsequent changes in the staff were to be
reported to the Vice-Chancellor for his/her approval. Clause 18 provided
that non-government colleges were to comply with the requirements laid down
in the ordinances governing the service and conduct of teachers in non-
government colleges, as may be framed by the University. After referring to
Kerala Education Bill, Sidhajb (SIC) Sabhai and Rev. Father W. Proost, this
Court held that there was no justification for the provisions contained in
Clause 2(1)(a) and Clause 17 of the statutes as the interfered with the
rights of management of the minority educational institutions, P.
Jaganmohan Reddy, J., observed that "these provisions cannot, therefore, be
made as conditions of affiliation, the non-compliance of which would
involved disaffiliation and consequently they will have to be struck down
as offending Article 30(1)."
112. Clause 18, however, was held not to suffer from the same vice as
Clause 17 because the provision, insofar as it was applicable to the
minority institutions, empowered the University to prescribe by-regulations
governing the service and conduct of teachers, and that this was in the
larger interest of the institutions, and in order to ensure their
efficiency and excellence. In this connection, it was observed at page 709,
that:-
"Uniformity in the conditions of service and conduct of teachers in all
non-Government Colleges would make for harmony and avoid frustration. Of
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 30 of 116
course while the power to make ordinances in respect of the matters
referred to is unexceptional the nature of the infringement of the right,
if any, under Article 30(1) will depend on the actual purpose and import of
the ordinance when made and the manner in which it is likely to affect the
administration of the educational institution, about which it is not
possible now to predicate."
113. In The Ahmedabad St. Xaviers College Society and Anr. Etc. v. State of
Gujarat and Anr., this Court had to consider the constitutional validity of
certain provisions of the Gujarat University Act, 1949, insofar as they
were made to apply to the minority Christian institution. The impugned
provisions, inter alia, provided that the University may determine that all
instructions, teaching and training in courses of studies, in respect of
which the University was competent to hold examinations, would be conducted
by the University and would be imparted by the teachers of the University.
Another provision provided that new colleges that may seek affiliation,
were to be the constituent colleges of the University. The Court considered
the scope and ambit of the rights of the minorities, whether based on
religion or language, to establish and administer educational institutions
of their choice under Article 30(1) of the Constitution. In dealing with
this aspect, Ray, C.J., at page 192, while considering Article 25 to 30,
observed as follows:-
"Every section of the public, the majority as well as minority has rights
in respect of religion as contemplated in Articles 25 and 26 and rights in
respect of language, script, culture as contemplated in Article 29. The
whole object of conferring the right on minorities under Article 30 is to
ensure that there will be equality between the majority and the minority.
If the minorities do not have such special protection they will be denied
equality."
114. Elaborating on the meaning and intent of Article 30, the learned Chief
Justice further observed as follows:-
"The real reason embodied in Article 30(1) of the Constitution is the
conscience of the nation that the minorities, religious as well as
linguistic, are not prohibited from establishing and administering
educational institutions of their choice for the purpose of giving their
children the best general education to make them complete men and women of
the country. The minorities are given this protection under Article 30 in
order to preserve and strengthen the integrity and unity of the country.
The sphere of general secular education is intended to develop the
commonness of boys and girls of our country. This is in the true spirit of
liberty, equality and fraternity through the medium of education. If
religious or linguistic minorities are not given protection under Article
30 to establish and administer educational institutions of their choice,
they will feel isolated and separate. General secular education will open
doors of perception and
act as the natural light of mind for our countrymen to live in the whole."
115. The Court then considered whether the religious and linguistic
minorities, who have the right to establish and administer educational
institutions of their choice, had a fundamental right to affiliation.
Recognizing that the affiliation to a University consisted of two parts,
the first part relating to syllabi, curricula, courses of instruction, the
qualifications of teachers, library, laboratories, conditions regarding
health and hygiene of students (aspects relating to establishment of
educational institutions), and the second part consisting of terms and
conditions regarding the management of institutions, it was held that with
regard to affiliation, a minority institution must follow the statutory
measures regulating educational standards and efficiency, prescribed
courses of study, courses of instruction, the principles regarding the
qualification of teachers, educational qualifications for entry of students
into educational institutions, etc.
116. While considering the right of the religious and linguistic minorities
to administer their educational institutions, it was observed by Ray, C.J.,
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 31 of 116
at page 194, as follows:-
".....The right to administer is said to consist of four principal matters.
First is the right to choose its managing or governing body. It is said
that the founders of the minority institution have faith and confidence in
their own committee or body consisting of persons selected by them. Second
is the right to choose its teachers. It is said that minority institutions
want teachers to have compatibility with the ideals, aims and aspirations
of the institution. Third is the right not to be compelled to refuse
admission to students. In other words, the minority institutions want to
have the right to admit students of their choice subject to reasonable
regulations about academic qualifications. Fourth is the right to use its
properties and assets for the benefit of its own institution."
117. While considering this right to administer,it was held that the same
was not an absolute right and that the right was not free from regulation.
While referring to the observations of Das, C.J., in the Kerala Education
Bill case, it was reiterated in the St. Xaviers College case that the right
to administer was not a right to mal-administer. Elaborating the minority’s
right to administer at page 196, it was observed as follows:-
".....The minority institutions have the right to administer institutions.
This right implies the obligation and duty of the minority institutions to
render the very best to the students. In the right of administration,
checks and balances in the shape of regulatory measures are required to
ensure the appointment of good teachers and their conditions of service.
The right to administer is to be tempered with regulatory measures to
facilitate smooth administration. The best administration will reveal no
trace colour of minority. A minority institution should shine in exemplary
eclecticism in the administration of the institution. The best compliment
that can be paid to a minority institution is that it does not rest on or
proclaim its minority character."
118. Ray, C.J., concluded by observing at page 200, as follows:-
"The ultimate goal of a minority institution too imparting general secular
education is advancement of learning. This Court has consistently held that
it is not only permissible but also desirable to regulate everything in
educational and academic matters for achieving excellence and uniformity in
standards of education.
In the field of administration it is not reasonable to claim that minority
institutions will have complete autonomy. Checks on the administration may
be necessary in order to ensure that the administration is efficient and
sound and will serve the academic needs of the institution. The right of a
minority to administer its educational institution involves, as part of it,
a correlative duty of good administration."
119. In a concurrent judgment, while noting that "Clause (2) of Article 29
forbids the denial of admission to citizens into any educational
institution maintained by the State or receiving aid out of State funds on
grounds only of religion, race, caste, language or any of then", Khanna, J.
then examined Article 30, and observed at page 222, as follows:-
"Clause (1) of Article 30 gives right to all minorities, whether based on
religion or language, to establish and administer educational institutions
of their choice Analyzing that clause it would follow that the right which
has been conferred by the clause is no two types of minorities. Those
minorities may be based either on religion or on language. The right
conferred upon the said minorities is to establish and administer
educational institutions of their choice. The word "establish" indicates
the rights to bring into existence, while the right to administer an
institution means the right to effectively manage and conduct the affairs
of the institution. Administration connotes management of the affairs of
the institution. The management must be free of control so that the
founders or their nominees can mould the institution as they think fit and
in accordance with their ideas of how the interest of the community in
general and the institution in particular will be best served. The words
"of their choice" qualify the educational institutions and show that the
educational institutions established and administered by the minorities
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 32 of 116
need not be of some particular class; the minorities have the right and
freedom to establish and administer such educational institutions as they
choose. Clause (2) of Article 30 prevents the State from making
discrimination in the matter of grant of aid to any educational institution
on the ground that the institution is under the management of a minority
whether based on religion or language.
120. Explaining the rationale behind Article 30, it was observed at page
224, as follows:-
"The idea of giving some special rights to the minorities is not to have a
kind of a privileged or pampered section of the population but to give to
the minorities a sense of security and a feeling of confidence. The great
leaders of India since time immemorial had preached the doctrine of
tolerance and catholicity of outlook. Those noble ideas were enshrined in
the Constitution. Special rights for minorities were designed not to create
inequality. Their real effect was to bring about equality by ensuring the
preservation of the minority institutions and by guaranteeing to the
minorities autonomy in the matter of the administration of these
institutions. The differential treatment for the minorities by giving them
special rights is intended to bring about an equilibrium, so that the ideal
of equality may not be reduced to a mere abstract idea but should become a
living reality and result in true, genuine equality an equality not merely
in theory but also in fact."
121. While advocating that provisions of the Constitution should be
construed according to the liberal, generous and sympathetic approach, and
after considering the principles which could be discerned by him from the
earlier decisions of this Court, Khanna, J., observed at page 234, as
follows:-
"...The minorities are as much children of the soil as the majority and the
approach has been to ensure that nothing should be done as might deprive
the minorities of a sense of belonging of a feeling of security, of a
consciousness of equality and of the awareness that the conservation of
their religion, culture, language and script as also the protection of
their educational institutions is a fundamental right enshrined in the
Constitution. The same generous, liberal and sympathetic approach should
weigh with the courts in construing Articles 29 and 30 as marked the
deliberations of the Constitution-makers in drafting those articles and
making them part of the fundamental rights. The safeguarding of the
interest of the minorities amongst sections of population is as important
as the protection of the interest amongst individuals of persons who are
below the age of majority or are otherwise suffering from some kind of
infirmity. the Constitution and the laws made by civilized nations,
therefore, generally contain provisions for the protection of those
interests. It can, indeed, be said to be an index of the level of
civilization and catholicity of a nation as to how far their minorities
feel secure and are not subject to any discrimination or suppression."
122. The learned Judge then observed that the right of the minorities to
administer educational institutions did not prevent the making of
reasonable regulations in respect of these institutions. Recognizing that
the right to administer educational institutions could not include the
right to mal-administer, it was held that regulations could be lawfully
imposed, for the receiving of grants and recognition, while permitting the
institution to retain its character as a minority institution. The
regulation "must satisfy a dual test -- the test of reasonableness, and the
test that it is regulative of the educational character of the institution
and is conductive to making the institution an effective vehicle of
education for the minority community or other persons who resort to it." It
was permissible for the authorities to prescribes regulations, which must
be complied with, before a minority institution could seek or retain
affiliation and recognition. But it was also stated that the regulations
made by the authority should not impinge upon the minority character of the
institution. Therefore, a balance has to be kept between the two objectives
-- that of ensuring the standard of excellence of the institution, and that
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 33 of 116
of preserving the right of the minorities to establish and administer their
educational institutions. Regulations that embraced and reconciled the two
objectives could be considered to be reasonable. This, in our view, is the
correct approach to the problem.
123. After referring to the earlier cases in relation to the appointment of
teachers, it was noted by Khanna, J., that the conclusion which followed
was that a law which interfered with a minority’s choice of qualified
teachers, or its disciplinary control over teachers and other members of
the staff of the institution, was void, as it was violative of Article
30(1). While it was permissible for the state and its educational
authorities to prescribe the qualifications of teachers, it was held that
once the teachers possessing the requisite qualifications were selected by
the minorities for their educational institutions, the state would have no
right to veto the selection of those teachers. The selection and
appointment of teachers for an educational institution was regarded as one
of the essential ingredients under Article 30(1). The Court’s attention was
drawn to the fact that in the Kerala Education Bill case, this Court has
opined that Clauses (11) and (12) made it obligatory for all aided schools
to select teachers from a panel selected from each district by the Public
Service Commission and that no teacher of an aided school could be
dismissed, removed or reduced in rank without the previous sanction of the
authorized officer. At page 245, Khanna, J., observed that in cases
subsequent to the opinion in the Kerala Education Bill case, this Court had
held similar provisions as Clause (11) and Clause (12) to be violative of
Article 30(1) of the minority institution. He then observed as follows:-
"...The opinion expressed by this Court in Re Kerala Education Bill (supra)
was of an advisory character and though great weight should be attached to
it because of its persuasive value, the said opinion cannot override the
opinion subsequently expressed by this Court in contested cases. It is the
law declared by this Court in the subsequent contested cases which would
have a binding effect. The words "as at present advised" as well as the
preceding sentence indicate that the view expressed by this Court in Re
Kerala Education Bill in this respect was hesitant and tentative and not a
final view in the matter...."
124. In Lilly Kurian v. Sr. Lewina and Ors., this Court struck down the
power of the Vice-Chancellor to veto the decision of the management to
impose a penalty on a teacher. It was held that the power of the Vice-
Chancellor, while hearing an appeal against the imposition of the panel was
uncanalized and unguided. In Christian Medical College Hospital Employees’
Union and Anr. v. Christian Medical College Vellore Association and Ors.,
this Court upheld the application of industrial law to minority colleges,
and it was held that providing a remedy against unfair dismissals would not
infringe Article 30. In Gandhi Faizeam College Shahajhanpur v. University
of Agra and Anr. [(1975) 3 SCR 810], a law which sought to regulate the
working of minority institutions by providing that a broad-based management
committee could be re-constituted by including therein the Principal and
the senior-most teacher, was valid and not violative of the right under
Article 30(1) of the Constitution. In All Saints High School, Hyderabad
Etc. Etc. v. Government of A.P. and Ors. Etc, a regulation providing that
no teacher would be dismissed, removed, or reduced in rank, or terminated
otherwise except with the prior approval of the competent authority, was
held to be invalid, as it sought to confer an unqualified power upon the
competent authority. In Frank Anthony Public School Employees Association
v. Union of India and Ors., the regulation providing for prior approval for
dismissal was held to be invalid, while the provision for an appeal against
the order of dismissal by an employee to a Tribunal was upheld. The
regulation requiring prior approval before suspending an employee was held
to be valid, but the provision, which exempted unaided minority schools
from the regulation that equated the pay and other benefits of employees of
recognized schools with those in schools run by the authority, was held to
be invalid and violative of the equality clause. It was held by this Court
that the regulations regarding pay and allowances for teachers and staff
would not violate Article 30.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 34 of 116
125. In the St. Stephen’s College case, the right of minorities to
administer educational institutions and the applicability of Article 29(2)
to an institution to which Article 30(1) was applicable came up for
consideration. St. Stephen’s College claimed to be a minority institution,
which was affiliated to Delhi University, the College had its own
provisions with regard to the admission of students. This provision
postulated that applications would be invited by the college by a
particular date. The applications were processed and a cut-off percentage
for each subject was determined by the Head of the respective Departments
and a list of potentially suitable candidates was prepared on the basis of
1:4 and 1:5 ratios for Arts and Science students respectively, and they
were then called for an interview (i.e., for every available seat in the
Arts Department, four candidates were called for interviews; similarly, for
every available seat in the Science Department, five candidates were called
for interviews). In respect of Christian Students, a relaxation of upto 10%
was given in determining the cut-off point. Thereafter, the interviews were
conducted and admission was granted. The Delhi University, however, had
issued a circular, which provided that admission should be granted to the
various courses purely on the basis of merit, i.e., the percentage of marks
secured by the students in the qualifying examination. The said circular
did not postulate any interview. Thereafter, the admission policy of St.
Stephen’s College was challenged by a petition under Article 32. It was
contended by the petitioners that the College was bound to follow the
University policy, rules and regulations regarding admission, and further
argued that it was not a minority institution, and in the alternative, it
was not entitled to discriminate against students on the ground of
religion, as the college was receiving grant-in-aid from the government,
and that such discrimination was violative of Article 29(2). The College
had also filed a writ petition in the Supreme Court taking the stand that
it was a religious minority institution, and that the circular of the
University regarding admission violated its fundamental right under Article
30. This Court held that St. Stephen’s College was a minority institution.
With regard to the second question as to whether the college was bound by
the University circulars regarding admission, this Court, by a majority of
4-1, upheld the admission procedure used by the College, even though it was
different from the one laid down by the University. In this context, the
contention of the College was that it had been following its own admission
programme for more than a hundred years and that it had built a tradition
of excellence in a number of distinctive activities. The College challenged
the University circular on the ground that it was not regulatory in nature,
and that it violated its right under Article 30. Its submission was that if
students were admitted purely on the basis of marks obtained by them in the
qualifying examination, it would not be possible for any Christian student
to gain admission. The college had also found that unless a concession was
afforded, the Christian students could not be brought within the zone of
consideration as they generally lacked merit when compared to the other
applicants. This Court referred to the earlier decisions, and with regard
to Article 30(1), observed at page 596, paragraph 54, as follows:-
"The minorities whether based on religion or language have the right to
establish and administer educational institutions of their choice. The
administration of educational institutions of their choice under Article
30(1) means ’management of the affairs of the institution’. This management
must be free from control so that the founder or their nominees can mould
the institution as they think fit, and in accordance with their ideas of
how the interests of the community in general and the institution in
particular will be best served. But the standards of education are not a
part of the management as such. The standard concerns the body politic and
is governed by considerations of the advancement of the country and its
people. Such regulations do not bear directly upon management although they
may indirectly affect it. The State, therefore has the right to regulate
the standard of education and allied matters. Minority institutions cannot
be permitted to fall below the standards of excellence expected of
educational institutions. They cannot decline to follow the general pattern
of education under the guise of exclusive right of management. While the
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 35 of 116
management must be left to them, they may be compelled to keep in step with
others...."
126. It was further noticed that the right under Article 30(1) had to be
read subject to the power of the state to regulate education, educational
standards and allied matters. In this connection, at pages 598-99,
paragraph 59, it was observed as follows:-
"The need for a detailed study on this aspect is indeed not necessary. The
right to minorities whether religious or linguistic, to administer
educational institutions and the power of the State to regulate academic
matters and management is now fairly well settled. The right to administer
does not include the right to maladminister. The State being the
controlling authority has right and duty to regulate all academic matters.
Regulations which will serve the interests of students and teachers, and to
preserve the uniformity in standards of education among the affiliated
institutions could be made. The minority institutions cannot claim immunity
against such general pattern and standard or against general laws such as
laws relating to law and order, health, hygiene, labor relations, social
welfare legislations, contracts, torts etc. which are applicable to all
communities. So long as the basic right of minorities to manage educational
institution is not taken away, the State is competent to make regulatory
legislation. Regulations, however, shall not have the effect of depriving
the right of minorities to educate their children in their own institution.
That is a privilege which is implied in the right conferred by Article
30(1).
127. Dealing with the question of the selection of students, it was
accepted that the right to select students for admission was a part of
administration, and that this power could be regulated, but it was held
that the regulation must be reasonable and should be conducive to the
welfare of the minority institution or for the betterment of those who
resort to it. Bearing this principle in mind, this Court took note of the
fact that if the College was to admit students as per the circular issued
by the University, it would have to deny admissions to the students
belonging to the Christian community because of the prevailing situation
that even after the concession, only a small number of minority applicants
would gain admission. It was the case of the College that the selection was
made on the basis of the candidate’s academic record, and his/her
performance at the interview keeping in mind his/her all round competence,
his/her capacity to benefit from attendance at the College, as well as
his/her capacity to benefit from attendance at the College, as well as
his/her potential to contribute to the life of the College. While observing
that the oral interview as a supplementary test and not as the exclusive
test for assessing the suitability of the candidates for college admission
had been recognized by this Court, this Court observed that the admission
programme of the college "based on the test of promise and accomplishment
of candidates seems to be better than the blind method of selection based
on the marks secured in the qualifying examinations." The Court accordingly
held that St. Stephen’s College was not bound by the impugned circulars of
the University. This Court then dealt with the question as to whether a
preference in favour of, or a reservation of seats for candidates belonging
to, its own community by the minority institutions would be invalid under
Article 29(2) of the Constitution. After referring to the Constituent
Assembly Debates and the proceedings of the Draft Committee that led to the
incorporation of Articles 29 and 30, this Court proceeded to examine the
question of the true import and effect of Articles 29(2) and 30(1) of the
Constitution. On behalf of the institutions, it was argued that a
preference given to minority candidates in their own educational
institutions, on the ground that those candidates belonged to that minority
community, was not violative of Article 29(2), and that in the exercise of
Article 30(1), the minorities were entitled to establish and administer
educational institutions for the exclusive advantage of their own
community’s candidates. This contention was not accepted by this Court on
two grounds. Firstly, it was held that institutional preference to minority
candidates based on religion was apparently an institutional discrimination
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 36 of 116
on the forbidden ground of religion -- the Court stated that "if an
educational institution says yes to one candidate but says no to other
candidate on the ground of religion, it amounts to discrimination on the
ground of religion. The mandate of Article 29(2) is that there shall not be
any such discrimination." It further held that, as pointed out in the
Kerala Education Bill case, the minorities could not establish educational
institutions for the benefit of their own community alone. For if such was
the aim, Article 30(1) would have been differently worded and it would have
contained the words "for their own community". In this regard, it would be
useful to bear in mind that the Court at page 607, paragraph 81, noticed
that:-
"Even in practice, such claims are likely to be met with considerable
hostility. It may not be conducive to have a relatively homogeneous
society. It may lead to religious bigotry which is the bane of mankind. In
the nation building with secular character sectarian schools or colleges,
segregated faculties or universities for imparting general secular
education are undesirable and they may undermine secular democracy. They
would be inconsistent with the central concept of secularism and equality
embedded in the Constitution. Every educational institution irrespective of
community to which it belongs is a ’melting pot’ in our national life. The
students and teachers are the critical ingredients. It is there they
develop respect for, and tolerance of, the cultures and beliefs of others.
It is essential therefore, that there should be proper mix of students of
different communities in all educational institutions.
128. The Court then dealt with the contention on behalf of the University
that the minority institutions receiving government aid were bound by the
mandate of Article 29(2), and that they could not prefer candidates from
their own community. The Court referred to the decision in the case of
Champakam Dorairajan (supra), but observed as follows:
".....the fact that Article 29(2) applied to minorities as well as non-
minorities did not mean that it was intended to nullify the special right
guaranteed to minorities in Article 30(1). Article 29(2) deals with non-
discrimination and is available only to individuals. General equality by
non-discrimination is not the only need of minorities. Minority rights
under majority rule implies more than non-discrimination; indeed, it begins
with non-discrimination. Protection of interests and institutions and the
advancement of opportunity are just as important. Differential treatment
that distinguishes them from the majority is a must to preserve their basic
characteristics."
129. Dealing with the submission that in a secular democracy the government
could not be utilized to promote the interest of any particular community,
and that the minority institution was not entitled to state aid as of
right, this Court, at page 609, paragraph 87, held as follows:-
"It is quite true that there is no entitlement to State grant for minority
educational institutions. There was only a stop-gap arrangement under
Article 337 for the Anglo-Indian community to receive State grants. There
is no similar provision for other minorities to get grant from the State.
But under Article 30(2), the State is under an obligation to maintain
equality of treatment in granting aid to educational institutions. Minority
institutions are not to be treated differently while giving financial
assistance. They are entitled to get the financial assistance much the same
way as the institutions of the majority communities."
130. It was further held that the state could lay down reasonable
conditions for obtaining grant-in-aid and for its proper utilization, but
that the state had no power to compel minority institutions to give up
their rights under Article 30(1). After referring to the Kerala Education
Bill case and Sidhajbhai Sabhai’s case, the Court observed at page 609,
paragraph 88, as follows:-
"....In the latter case this court observed at SCR pages 856-57 that the
regulation which may lawfully be imposed as a condition of receiving grant
must be directed in making the institution an effective minority
educational institution. The regulation cannot change the character of the
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 37 of 116
minority institution. Such regulations must satisfy a dual test; the test
of reasonableness, and the test that it is regulative of the educational
character of the institution. It must be conducive to making the
institution and effective vehicle of education for the minority community
or other persons who resort to it. It is thus evident that the rights under
Article 30(1) remain unaffected even after securing financial assistance
from the government."
131. After referring to the following observations in D.A.V. College case,
"...The right of a religious or linguistic minority to establish and
administer educational institutions of its choice under Article 30(1) is
subject to the regulatory power of the State for maintaining and (sic)ng
the excellence of its standards. This right is further subject to Article
29(2), which provides that no citizen shall be denied admission into any
educational institution which is maintained by the State or receives aid
out of State funds, on grounds only of religion, race, caste, language or
any of them...."
the learned Judges remarked at page 610 (para 91) that in the said case,
the Court was not deciding the question that had arisen before them.
132. According to the learned Judges, the question of the interplay of
Article 29(2) with Article 30(1) had arisen in that case (St. Stephen’s
case) for the first time, and had not been considered by the Court earlier,
they observed that "we are on virgin soil, not on trodden ground". Dealing
with the interplay of these two Articles, it was observed, at page 612,
paragraph 96, as follows:-
"The collective minority right is required to be made functional and is not
to be reduced to useless lumber. A meaningful right must be shaped, moulded
and created under Article 30(1), while at the same time affirming the right
of individuals under Article 29(2). There is need to strike a balance
between the two competing rights. It is necessary to mediate between
Article 29(2) and Article 30(1), between letter and spirit of these
articles, between traditions of the past and the convenience of the
present, between society’s need for stability and its need for change."
133. The two competing rights are the right of the citizen not to be denied
admission granted under Article 29(2), and right of the religious or
linguistic minority to administer and establish an institution of its
choice granted under Article 30(1). While treating Article 29(2) as a facet
of equality, the Court gave a contextual interpretation to Articles 29(2)
and 30(1) while rejecting the extreme contention on both sides, i.e., on
behalf of the institutions that Article 29(2) did not prevent a minority
institution to preferably admit only members belonging to the minority
community, and the contention on behalf of the State that Article 29(2)
prohibited any preference in favour of a minority community for whose
benefit the institution was established. The Court concluded, at pages
613-14, para 102, as follows:-
"In the light of all these principles and factors, and in view of the
importance which the Constitution attaches to protective measures to
minorities under Article 30(1), the minority aided educational institutions
are entitled to prefer their community candidates to maintain the minority
character of the institutions subject of course to conformity with the
University standard. The State may regulate the intake in this category
with due regard to the need of the community in the area which the
institution is intended to serve. But in no case such intake shall exceed
50 per cent of the annual admission. The minority institutions shall make
available at least 50 per cent of the annual admission to members of
communities other than the minority community. The admission of other
community candidates shall be done purely on the basis of merit."
134. If we keep these basic features, as highlighted in St. Stephen’s case,
in view, then the real purposes underlying Articles 29(2) and 30 can be
better appreciated.
135. We agree with the contention of the learned Solicitor General that the
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 38 of 116
Constitution in Part III does not contain or give any absolute right. All
rights conferred in Part III of the Constitution are subject to at least
other provisions of the said Part. It is difficult to comprehend that the
framers of the Constitution would have given such an absolute right to the
religious or linguistic minority which would enable them to establish and
administer educational institutions in manner so as to be in conflict with
the other Parts of the Constitution. We find difficult to accept that in
the establishment and administration of educational institutions by the
religious and linguistic minorities, no law of the land, even the
Constitution, is to apply to them.
136. Decisions of this Court have held that the right to administer does
not include the right to mal-administer. It has also been held that the
right to administer is not absolute, but must be subject to reasonable
regulations for the benefit of the institutions as the vehicle of
education, consistent with national interest. General laws of the land
applicable to all persons have been held to be applicable to the minority
institutions also -- for example, laws relating to taxation, sanitation,
social welfare, economic regulation, public order and morality.
137. It follows from the aforesaid decisions that even though the words of
Article 30(1) are unqualified, this Court has held that at least certain
other laws of the land pertaining to health, morality and standards of
education apply. The right under Article 30(1) has, therefore, not been
held to be absolute or above other provisions of the law, and we reiterate
the same. By the same analogy, there is no reason why regulations or
conditions concerning, generally, the welfare of students and teachers
should not be made applicable in order to provide a proper academic
atmosphere, as such provisions do not in any way interfere with the right
of administration or management under Article 30(1).
138. As we look at it, Article 30(1) is a sort of guarantee or assurance to
the linguistic and religious minority institutions of their right to
establish and administer educational institutions of their choice.
Secularism and equality being two of the basic features of the
Constitution, Article 30(1) ensures protection to the linguistic and
religious minorities, thereby preserving the secularism of the country.
Furthermore, the principles of equality must necessarily apply to the
enjoyment of such rights. No law can be framed that will discriminate
against such minorities with regard to the establishment and administration
of educational institutions vis-a-vis other educational institutions. Any
law or rule or regulation that would put the educational institutions run
by the minorities at a disadvantage when compared to the institutions run
by the others will have to be struck down. At the same time, there also
cannot be any reverse discrimination. It was observed in St. Xaviers
College case, at page 192, that "the whole object of conferring the right
on minorities under Article 30 is to ensure that there will be equality
between the majority and the minority. If the minorities do not have such
special protection, they will be dented equality." In other words, the
essence of Article 30(1) is to ensure equal treatment between the majority
and the minority institutions. No one type or category of institution
should be disfavoured or, for that matter, receive more favourable
treatment than another. Laws of the land, including rules and regulations,
must apply equally to the majority institutions as well as to the minority
institutions. The minority institutions must be allowed to do what the non-
minority institutions are permitted to do.
139. Like any other private unaided institutions, similar unaided
educational institutions administered by linguistic or religious minorities
are assured maximum autonomy in relation thereto; e.g., method of
recruitment of teachers, charging of fees and admission of students. They
will have to comply with the conditions of recognition, which cannot be
such as to whittle down the right under Article 30.
140. We have now to address the question of whether Article 30 gives a
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 39 of 116
right to ask for a grant or aid from the state, and secondly, if it does
get aid, to examine to what extent its autonomy in administration,
specifically in the matter of admission to the educational institution
established by the community, can be curtailed or regulated.
141. The grant of aid is not a constitutional imperative. Article 337 only
gives the right to assistance by way of grant to the Anglo-Indian community
for a specified period of time. If no aid is granted to anyone, Article
30(1) would not justify a demand for aid, and it cannot be said that the
absence of aid makes the right under Article 30(1). The founding fathers
have not incorporated the right to grants in Article 30, whereas they have
done so under Article 337; what, then, is the meaning, scope and effect of
Article 30(2)? Article 30(2) only means what it states, viz that a minority
institution shall not be discriminated against when aid to educational
institutions is granted. In other words the state cannot, when it chooses
to grant aid to educational institutions, deny aid to a religious or
linguistic minority institution only on the ground that the management of
that institution is with the minority. We would, however, like to clarify
that if an object surrender of the right to management is made a condition
of aid, the denial of aid would be violative of Article 30(2). However,
conditions of aid that do not involve a surrender of the substantial right
of management would not be inconsistent with constitutional guarantees,
even if they indirectly impinge upon some fact of administration. If,
however, aid were denied on the ground that the educational institution is
under the management of a minority, then such a denial would be completely
invalid.
142. The implication of Article 30(2) is also that it recognizes that the
minority nature of the institution should continue, notwithstanding the
grant of aid. In other words, when a grant is given to all institutions for
imparting secular education, a minority institution is also entitled to
receive it subject to the fulfillment of the requisite criteria, and the
state gives the grant knowing that a linguistic or minority educational
institution will also receive the same. Of course, the state cannot be
compelled to grant aid, but the receipt of aid cannot be a reason for
altering the nature of character of the incipient educational institution.
143. This means that the right under Article 30(1) implies that any grant
that is given by the state to the minority institution cannot have such
conditions attached to it, which will in any way dilute or abridge the
rights of the minority institution to establish and administer that
institution. The conditions that can normally be permitted to be imposed,
on the educational institutions receiving the grant, must be related to the
proper utilization of the grant and fulfillment of the objectives of the
grant. Any such secular conditions so laid, such as a proper audit with
regard to the utilization of the funds and the manner in which the funds
are to be utilized, will be applicable and would not dilute the minority
status of the educational institutions. Such conditions would be valid if
they are also imposed on other educational institutions receiving the
grant.
144. It cannot be argued that no conditions can be imposed while giving aid
to a minority institution. Whether it is an institution run by the majority
or the minority, all conditions that have relevance to the proper
utilization of the grant-in-aid by an educational institution can be
imposed. All that Article 30(2) states is that on the ground that an
institution is under the management of a minority, whether based on
religion or language, grant of aid to that educational institution cannot
be discriminated against, if other educational institutions are entitled to
received aid. The conditions for grant or non-grant of aid to educational
institutions have to be uniformly applied, whether it is a majority-run
institution or a minority-run institution. As in the case of a majority-run
institution, the moment a minority institution obtains a grant of aid,
Article 28 of the Constitution comes into play. When an educational
institution is maintained out of State funds, no religious institution can
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 40 of 116
be provided therein. Article 28(1) does not state that it applies only to
educational institutions that are not established or maintained by
religious or linguistic minorities. Furthermore, upon the receipt of aid,
the provisions of Article 28(3) would apply to all educational institutions
whether run by the minorities or the non-minorities. Article 28(3) is the
right of a person studying in a state recognized institution or in an
educational institution receiving aid from state funds, not to take part in
any religious instruction, if imparted by such institution, without his/her
consent (or his/her guardian’s consent if such a person is a minor). Just
as Article 28(1) and (3) become applicable the moment any educational
institution takes aid, likewise, Article 29(2) would also be attracted and
become applicable to an educational institution maintained by the state or
receiving aid out of state funds. It was strenuously contended that the
right to give admission is one of the essential ingredients of the right to
administer conferred on the religious or linguistic minority, and that this
right should not be curtailed in any manner. It is difficult to accept this
contention. If Article 23(1) and (3) apply to a minority institution that
receives aid out of state funds, there is nothing in the language of
Article 30 that would make the provisions of Article 29(2) inapplicable.
Like Article 28(1) and Article 28(3), Article 29(2) refers to "any
educational institution maintained by the State or receiving aid out of
State funds". A minority institution would fall within the ambit of Article
29(2) in the same manner in which Article 28(1) and Article 28(3) would be
applicable to an aided minority institution. it is true that one of the
rights to administer an educational institution is to grant admission to
the students. As long as an educational institution, whether belonging to
the minority or the majority community, does not receive aid, it would, in
our opinion, be its right and discretion to grant admission to such
students as it chooses or selects subject to what has been clarified
before. Out of the various rights that the minority institution has in the
administration of the institution, Article 29(2) curtails the right to
grant admission to a certain extent. By virtue of Article 29(2), no citizen
can be denied admission by an aided minority institution on the grounds
only of religion, race, caste, language or any of them. It is no doubt true
that Article 29(2) does curtail one of the powers of the minority
institution, but on receiving aid, some of the rights that an unaided
minority institution has are also curtailed by Article 28(1) and 28(3). A
minority educational institution has a right to impart religious
instruction - this right is taken away by Article 28(1), if that minority
institution is maintained wholly out of state funds. Similarly on receiving
aid out of state funds or on being recognized by the state, the absolute
right of a minority institution requiring a student to attend religious
instruction is curtailed by Article 28(3). If the curtailment of the right
to administer a minority institution on receiving aid or being wholly
maintained out of state funds as provided by Article 28 is valid, there is
no reason why Article 29(2) should not be held to be applicable. There is
nothing in the language of Article 28(1) and (3), Article 29(2) and Article
30 to suggest that on receiving aid, Article 28(1) and (3) will apply, but
Article 29(2) will not. Therefore, the contention that the institutions
covered by Article 30 are outside the injunction of Article 29(2) cannot be
accepted.
145. What is the true scope and effect of Article 29(2)? Article 29(2) is
capable of two interpretations--one interpretation, which is put forth by
the Solicitor General and the other counsel for the different States, is
that a minority institution receiving aid cannot deny admission to any
citizen on the grounds of religion, race, caste, language or any of them.
In other words, the minority institution, once it takes any aid, cannot
make any reservation for its own community or show a preference at the time
of admission, i.e., if the educational institution was a private unaided
minority institution, it is free to admit all students of its own
community, but once aid is received, Article 29(2) makes it obligatory on
the institution not to deny admission to a citizen just because he does not
belong to the minority community that has established the institution.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 41 of 116
146. The other interpretation that is put forth is that Article 29(2) is a
protection against discrimination on the ground of religion, race, caste or
language, and does not in any way come into play where the minority
institution prefers students of its choice. To put it differently, denying
admission, even though seats are available, on the ground of the
applicant’s religion, race, caste or language, is prohibited, but
preferring students of minority groups does not violate Article 29(2).
147. It is relevant to note that though Article 29 carries the head note
"Protection of interests of minorities" it does not use the expression
"minorities" in its text. The original proposal of the Advisory Committee
in the Constituent Assembly recommended the following:-
""(1) Minorities in every unit shall be protected in respect of their
language, script and culture and no laws or regulations may be enacted that
may operate oppressively or prejudicially in this respect" [B. Siva Rao,
"Select Documents" (1957) Vol. 2 page 281]
But after the clause was considered by the drafting Committee on 1st
November, 1947, it emerged with substitute of ’section of citizen’. [B.
Siva Rao, Select Documents (1957) Vol. 3, pages 525-26. Clause 23, Draft
Constitution]. It was explained that the intention had always been to use
’minority’ in a wide sense, so as to include (for example) Maharashtrians
who settled in Bengal. (7 C.A.D. pages 922-23)"
148. Both Articles 29 and 30 from a part of the fundamental rights Chapter
in Part III of the Constitution. Article 30 is confined to minorities, be
it religious or linguistic, and unlike Article 29(1), the right available
under the said Article cannot be availed by any section of citizens. The
main distinction between Article 29(1) and Article 30(1) is that in the
former, the right is confined to conservation of language, script or
culture. As was observed in the Father W. Proost case, the right given by
Article 29(1) is fortified by Article 30(1), insofar as minorities are
concerned. In the St. Xaviers College case, it was held that the right to
establish an educational institution is not confined to conservation of
language, script or culture. When constitutional provisions are
interpreted, it has to be borne in mind that the interpretation should be
such as to further the object of their incorporation. They cannot be read
in isolation and have to be read harmoniously to provide meaning and
purpose. They cannot be interpreted in a manner that renders another
provision redundant. If necessary, a purposive and harmonious
interpretation should be given.
149. Although the right to administer includes within it a right to grant
admission to students of their choice under Article 30(1), when such a
minority institution is granted the facility of receiving grant-in-aid,
Article 29(2) would apply, and necessarily, therefore, one of the right of
administration of the minorities would be eroded to some extent. Article
30(2) is an injunction against the state not to discriminate against the
minority educational institution and prevent it from receiving aid on the
ground that the institution is under the management of a minority. While,
therefore, a minority educational institution receiving grant-in-aid would
not be completely outside the discipline of Article 29(2) of the
Constitution by no stretch of imagination can the rights guaranteed under
Article 30(1) be annihilated. It is this context that some interplay
between Article 29(2) and Article 30(1) is required. As observed quite
aptly in St. Stephen’s case "the fact that Article 29(2) applies to
minorities as well as non-minorities does not mean that it was intended to
nullify the special right guaranteed to minorities in Article 30(1)." The
word "only" used in Article 29(2) is of considerable significance and has
been used for some avowed purpose. Denying admission to non-minorities for
the purpose of accommodating minority students to a reasonable extent will
not be only on grounds of religion etc., but is primarily meant to preserve
the minority character of the institution and to effectuate the guarantee
under Article 30(1). The best possible way is to hold that as long as the
minority educational institution permits admission of citizens belonging to
the non-minority class to a reasonable extent based upon merit, it will not
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 42 of 116
be an infraction of Article 29(2), even though the institution admits
students of the minority group of its own choice for whom the institution
was meant. What would be a reasonable extent would depend upon variable
factors, and it may not be advisable to fix any specific percentage. The
situation would vary according to the type of institution and the nature of
education that is being imparted in the institution. Usually, at the school
level, although it may be possible to fill up all the seats with students
of the minority group, at the higher level, either in colleges or in
technical institutions, it may not be possible to fill up all the seats
with the students of the minority group. However, even if it is possible to
fill up all the seats with students of the minority group, the moment the
institution is granted aid, the institution will have to admit students of
the non-minority group to a reasonable extent, whereby the character of the
institution is not annihilated, and at the same time, the rights of the
citizen engrafted under Article 29(2) are not subverted. It is for this
reason that a variable percentage of admission of minority students
depending on the type of institution and education is desirable, and
indeed, necessary, to promote the constitutional guarantee enshrined in
both Article 29(2) and Article 30.
150. At this stage, it will be appropriate to refer to the following
observations of B.P. Jeevan Reddy, J., in Indra Sawhney v. Union of India
and Ors. [1992 Supp. (3) SCC 215] at page 657, paragraph 683, as follows:-
"Before we proceed to deal with the question, we may be permitted to make a
few observations: The questions arising herein are not only of great moment
and consequence, they are also extremely delicate and sensitive. They
represent complex problems of Indian society, wrapped and presented to us
as constitutional and legal questions. On some of these questions, the
decisions of this Court have not been uniform. They speak with more than
one voice. Several opposing points of view have been pressed upon us with
equal force and passion and quite often with great emotion. We recognize
that these viewpoints are held genuinely by the respective exponents. Each
of them feels his own point of view is the only right one. We cannot,
however, agree with all of them. We have to find--and we have tried our
best to find--answers which according to us are the right ones
constitutionally and legally. Though, we are sitting in a larger Bench, we
have kept in mind the relevance and significance of the principle of stare
decisis. We are conscious of the fact that in law certainty, consistency
and continuity are highly desirable features. Where a decision has stood
the test of time and has never been doubted, we have respected it--unless,
of course, there are compelling and strong reasons to depart from it.
Where, however, such uniformity is not found, we have tried to answer the
question on principle keeping in mind the scheme and goal of our
Constitution and the material placed before us."
151. The right of the aided minority institution to preferably admit
students of its community, when Article 29(2) was applicable, has been
clarified by this Court over a decade ago in the St. Stephen’s College
case. While upholding the procedure for admitting students, this Court also
held that aided minority educational institutions were entitled to
preferably admit their community candidates so as to maintain the minority
character of the institution, and that the state may regulate the intake in
this category with due regard to the area that the institution was intended
to serve, but that this intake should not be more than 50% in any case.
Thus, St. Stephen’s endeavoured to strike a balance between the two
Articles. Though we accept the ratio of St. Stephen’s, which has held the
field for over a decade, we have compelling reservations in accepting the
rigid percentage stipulated therein. As Article 29 and Article 30 apply not
only to institutions of higher education but also to schools, a ceiling of
50% would not be proper. It will be more appropriate that depending upon
the level of the institution, whether it be a primary or secondary or high
school or a college, professional or otherwise, and on the population and
educational needs of the area in which the institution is to be located the
state properly balances the interests of all by providing for such a
percentage of students of the minority community to be admitted, so as to
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 43 of 116
adequately serve the interest of the community for which the institution
was established.
152. At the same time, the admissions to aided institutions, whether
awarded to minority or non-minority students, cannot be at the absolute
sweet will and pleasure of the management of minority educational
institutions. As the regulations to promote academic excellence and
standards do not encroach upon the guaranteed rights under Article 30, the
aided minority educational institutions can be required to observe inter se
merit amongst the eligible minority applicants and passage of common
entrance test by the candidates, where there is one, with regard to
admissions in professional and non-professional colleges. If there is no
such test, a rational method of assessing comparative merit has to be
evolved. As regards the non-minority segment, admission may be on the basis
of the common entrance test and counselling by a state agency. In the
courses for which such a test and counselling are not in vogue, admission
can be on the basis of relevant criteria for the determination of merit. It
would be open to the state authorities to insist on allocating a certain
percentage of seats to those belonging to weaker sections of society, from
amongst the non-minority seats.
153. We would, however, like to clarify one important aspect at this stage.
The aided linguistic minority educational institution is given the right to
admit students belonging to the linguistic minority to a reasonable extent
only to ensure that its minority character is preserved and that the
objective of establishing the institution is not defeated. If so, such an
institution is under an obligation to admit the bulk of the students
fitting into the description of the minority community. Therefore, the
students of that group residing in the state in which the institution is
located have to be necessarily admitted in a large measure because they
constitute the linguistic minority group as far as that state is concerned.
In other words, the predominance of linguistic students hailing from the
state in which the minority educational institution is established should
be present. The management bodies of such institution cannot resort to the
device of admitting the linguistic students of the adjoining state in which
they are in a majority, under the facade of the protection given under
Article 30(1). If not, the very objective of conferring the preferential
right of admission by harmoniously constructing Articles 30(1) and 29(2),
which we have done above, may be distorted.
154. We are rightly proud of being the largest democracy in the world. The
essential ingredient of democracy is the will and the right of the people
to elect their representatives from amongst a government is formed.
155. It will be wrong to presume that the government or the legislature
will act against the Constitution or contrary to the public or national
interest at all times. Viewing every action of the government with
skepticism, and with the belief that it must be invalid unless proved
otherwise, goes against the democratic form of government. It is no doubt
true that the Court has the power and the function to see that no one
including the government acts contrary to the law, but the cardinal
principle of our jurisprudence is that it is for the person who alleges
that the law has been violated to prove it to be so. In such an event, the
action of the government or the authority may have to be carefully
examined, but it is improper to proceed on the assumption that, merely
because an allegation is made, the action impugned or taken must be bad in
law. Such being the position, when the government frames rules and
regulations or lays down norms, specially with regard to eduction, one must
assume that unless shown otherwise, the action taken is in accordance with
law. Therefore, it will not be in order to so interpret a Constitution, and
Article 29 and 30 in particular, on the presumption that the state will
normally not act in the interest of the general public or in the interest
of concerned sections of the society.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 44 of 116
CONCLUSION
Equality and Secularism
156. Our country is often depicted as a person in the form of "Bharat Mata
-- Mother India". The people of India are regarded as her children with
their welfare being in her heart. Like and loving mother, the welfare of
the family is of paramount importance for her.
157. For a healthy family, it is important that each member is strong and
healthy. But then, all members do not have the same constitution, whether
physical and/or mental. For harmonious and healthy growth, it is natural
for the parents, and the mother in particular, to give more attention and
food to the weaker child so as to help him/her become stronger. Giving
extra food and attention and ensuring private tuition to help in his/her
studies will, in a sense, amount to giving the weaker child preferential
treatment. Just as lending physical support to the aged and the infirm, or
providing a special diet, cannot be regarded as unfair or unjust,
similarly, conferring certain rights on a special class, for good reasons,
cannot be considered inequitable. All the people of India are not alike,
and that is why preferential treatment to a special section of the society
is not frowned upon. Article 30 is a special right conferred on the
religious and linguistic minorities because of their numerical handicap and
to instill in them a sense of security and confidence, even though the
minorities cannot be per se regarded as weaker sections or underprivileged
segments of the society.
158. The one billion population of India consists of six main ethnic groups
and fifty-two major tribes; six major religions and 6,400 castes and sub-
castes; eighteen major languages and 1,600 minor languages and dialects.
The essence of secularism in India can best be depicted if a relief map of
India is made in mosaic, where the aforesaid one billion people are the
small pieces of marble that go into the making of a map. Each person,
whatever his/her language, caste, religion has his/her individual identity,
which has to be preserved, so that when pieced together it goes to form a
depiction with the different geographical features of India. These small
pieces of marble, in the form of human beings, which may individually be
dissimilar to each other, when placed together in a systematic manner,
produce the beautiful map of India. Each piece, like a citizen of India,
plays an important part in making of the whole. The variations of the
colours as well as different shades of the same colour in a map is the
result of these small pieces of different shades and colours of marble, but
even when one small piece of marble is removed, the whole map of India
would be scarred, and the beauty would be lost.
159. Each of the people of India has an important place in the formation of
the
nation. Each piece has to retain its own colour. By itself, it may be an
insignificant stone, but when placed in a proper manner, goes into the
making of a full picture of India in all its different colours and hues.
160. A citizen of India stands in a similar position. The Constitution
recognizes the differences among the people of India, but it gives equal
importance to each of them, their differences notwithstanding, for only
then can there be a unified secular nation. Recognizing the need for the
preservation and retention of different pieces that go into the making of a
whole nation, the Constitution, while maintaining, inter alia, the basic
principle of equality, contains adequate provisions that ensure the
preservation of these different pieces.
161. The essence of secularism in India is the recognition and preservation
of the different types of people, with diverse languages and different
beliefs, and placing them together so as to form a whole and united India.
Articles 29 and 30 do not more than seek to preserve the differences that
exist, and at the same time, unite the people to form one strong nation.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 45 of 116
ANSWERS TO ELEVEN QUESTIONS:
Q.1. What is the meaning and content of the expression "minorities" in
Article 30 of the Constitution of India?
A. Linguistic and religious minorities are covered by the expression
"minority" under Article 30 of the Constitution. Since reorganisation of
the State in India has been on linguistic lines, therefore, for the purpose
of determining the minority the unit will be the State and note the whole
of India. Thus, religious and linguistic minorities, who have been put at
par in Article 30, have to be considered State-wise.
Q.2. What is meant by the expression "religion" in Article 30(1)? Can the
followers of a sect or denomination of a particular religion claim
protection under Article 30(1) on the basis that they constitute a minority
in the State, even though the followers of that religion are in majority in
that State?
A. This question need not be answered by this Bench; it will be dealt with
by a regular Bench.
Q.3(a) What are the indicia for treating an educational institution as a
minority educational institution? Would an institution be regarded as a
minority educational institution because it was established by a person(s)
belonging to a religious or linguistic minority or its being administered
by a person(s) belonging to a religious or linguistic minority?
A. This question need not be answered by this Bench; it will be dealt with
by a regular Bench.
Q3(b) To what extent can professional education be treated as a matter
coming under minorities rights under Article 30?
A. Article 30(1) gives religious and linguistic minorities the right to
establish and administer educational institutions of their choice. The use
of the words "of their choice" indicates that even professional educational
institutions would be covered by Article 30.
Q.4 Whether the admission of students to minority educational institution,
whether aided or unaided, can be regulated by the State Government or by
the University to which the institution is affiliated?
A. Admission of students to unaided minority educational institutions,
viz., schools and undergraduates colleges where the scope for merit-based
selection is practically nil, cannot be regulated by the concerned State or
University, except for providing the qualifications and minimum conditions
of eligibility in the interest of academic standards.
The right to admit students being an essential facet of the right to
administer educational institutions of their choice, as contemplated under
Article 30 of the Constitution, the state government or the university may
not be entitled to interfere with that right, so long as the admission to
the unaided educational institutions is on a transparent basis and the
merit is adequately taken care of. The right to administer, not being
absolute, there could be regulatory measures for ensuring educational
standards and maintaining excellence thereof, and it is more so in the
matter of admissions to professional institutions.
A minority institution does not cease to be so, the moment grant-in-aid is
received by the institution. An aided minority educational institution,
therefore, would be entitled to have the right of admission of students
belonging to the minority group and at the same time, would be required to
admit a reasonable extent of non-minority students, so that the rights
under Article 30(1) are not substantially impaired and further the citizens
rights under Article 29(2) are not infringed. What would be a reasonable
extent, would vary from the types of institution, the courses of education
for which admission is being sought and other factors like educational
needs. The concerned State Government has to notify the percentage of the
non-minority students to be admitted in the light of the above
observations. Observance of inter se merit amongst the applicants belonging
to the minority group could be ensured. In the case of aided professional
institutions, it can also be stipulated that passing of the common entrance
test held by the state agency is necessary to seek admission. As regards
non-minority students who are eligible to seek admission for the remaining
seats, admission should normally be on the basis of the common entrance
test held by the state agency followed by counselling wherever it exists.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 46 of 116
Q5(a) Whether the minority’s rights to establish and administer educational
institutions of their choice will include the procedure and method of
admission and selection of students?
A. A minority institution may have its own procedure and method of
admission as well as selection of students, but such a procedure must be
fair and transparent, and the selection of students in professional and
higher education colleges should be on the basis of merit. The procedure
adopted or selection made should not tantamount to mal-administration. Even
an unaided minority institution ought not to ignore the merit of the
students for admission, while exercising its right to admit students to the
colleges aforesaid, as in that event, the institution will fail to achieve
excellence.
Q5(b) Whether the minority institutions’ right of admission of students and
to lay down procedure and method of admission, if any, would be affected in
any way by the receipt of State aid?
A. While giving aid to professional institutions, it would be permissible
for the authority giving aid to prescribe by-rules or regulations, the
conditions on the basis of which admission will be granted to different
aided colleges by virtue of merit, coupled with the reservation policy of
the state qua non-minority students. The merit may be determined either
through a common entrance test conducted by the concerned University or the
Government followed by counselling, or on the basis of an entrance test
conducted by individual institutions--the method to be followed is for the
university or the government to decide. The authority may also devise other
means to ensure that admission is granted to an aided professional
institution on the basis of merit. In the case of such institutions, it
will be permissible for the government or the university to provide that
consideration should be shown to the weaker sections of the society.
Q5(c) Whether the statutory provisions which regulate the facets of
administration like control over educational agencies, control over
governing bodies, conditions of affiliation including
recognition/withdrawal thereof, and appointment of staff, employees,
teachers and Principal including their service conditions and regulation of
fees, etc. would interfere with the right of administration of minorities?
A. So far as the statutory provisions regulating the facets of
administration are concerned, in case of an unaided minority educational
institution, the regulatory measure of control should be minimal and the
conditions of recognition as well as the conditions of affiliation to an
university or board have to be complied with, but in the mater of day-to-
day management like the appointment of staff, teaching and non-teaching,
and administrative control over them, the management should have the
freedom and there should not be any external controlling agency. However, a
rational procedure for the selection of teaching staff and for taking
disciplinary action has to be evolved by the management itself.
For redressing the grievances of employees of aided and unaided
institutions who are subjected to punishment or termination from service, a
mechanism will have to be evolved, and in our opinion, appropriate
tribunals could be constituted, and till then, such tribunals could be
presided over by a Judicial Officer of the rank of District Judge.
The State or other controlling authorities, however, can always prescribe
the minimum qualification, experience and other conditions bearing on the
merit of an individual for being appointed as a teacher or a principal of
any educational institution.
Regulations can be framed governing service conditions for teaching and
other staff for whom aid is provided by the state, without interfering with
the overall administrative control of the management over the staff.
Fees to be charged by unaided institutions cannot be regulated but no
institution should charge capitation fee.
Q6(a) Where can a minority institution be operationally located? Where a
religious or linguistic minority in State ’A" establishes an educational
institution in the said State, can such educational institution grant
preferential admission/reservations and other benefits to members of the
religious/linguistic group from other States where they are non-minorities?
A. This question need not be answered by this Bench; it will be dealt with
by a regular Bench.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 47 of 116
Q6(b) Whether it would be correct to say that only the members of that
minority residing in State ’A’ will be treated as the members of the
minority vis-\005-vis such institution?
A. This question need not be answered by this Bench; it will be dealt with
by a regular Bench.
Q.7 Whether the member of a linguistic non-minority in one State can
establish a trust/society in another State and claim minority status in
that State?
A. This question need not be answered by this Bench; it will be dealt with
by a regular Bench.
Q.8 Whether the ratio laid down by this Court in the St. Stephen’s case (
St. Stephen’s College v. University of Delhi is correct? If no, what order?
A. The basic ratio laid down by this Court in the St. Stephen’s College
case is correct, as indicated in this judgment. However, rigid percentage
cannot be stipulated. It has to be left to authorities to prescribe a
reasonable percentage having regard to the type of institution, population
and educational needs of minorities.
Q.9 Whether the decision of this Court in Unni Krishnan J.P. v. State of
A.P. (except where it holds that primary education is a fundamental right)
and the scheme framed thereunder required reconsideration/modification and
if yes, what?
A. The scheme framed by this Court in Unni Krishnan’s case case and the
directio to impose the same, except where it holds that primary education
is fundamental right, is unconstitutional. However, the principle that the
should not be capitation fee or profiteering is correct. Reasonable surplus
to meet cost of expansion and augmentation of facilities does not, however,
amount to profiteering.
Q.10 Whether the non-minorities have the right to establish and administer
educational institution under Article 21 and 29(1) read with Articles 14
and 15(1), in the same manner and to the same extent as minority
institutions? And
Q.11 What is the meaning of the expressions "Education" and "Educational
Institutions" in various provisions of the Constitution? Is the right to
establish and administer educational institutions guaranteed under the
Constitution?
A. The expression "education" in the Articles of the Constitution means and
includes education at all levels from the primary school level upto the
post-graduate level. It includes professional education. The expression
"educational institutions" means institutions that impart education, where
"education" is as understood hereinabove.
The right to establish and administer educational institutions is
guaranteed under the Constitution to all citizens under Articles 19(1)(g)
and 26, to minorities specifically under Article 30.
All citizens have a right to establish and administer educational
institutions under Articles 19(1)(g) and 26, but this right is subject to
the provisions of Articles 19(6) and 26(a). However, minority institutions
will have a right to admit students belonging to the minority group, in the
manner as discussed in this judgment.
___________________________________________________________________________
V.N. Khare, J.
162. It is interesting to note that Shri K.M. Munshi, one of the members of
the Constituent Assembly while intervening in the debate in the Constituent
Assembly with regard to the kind of religious education to be given in
governmental aided institution stated thus:
"if the proposed amendment is accepted, the matter has to be taken to
Supreme Court and eleven worthy Judges have to decide whether the kind of
education given is of a particular religion or in the nature of elementary
philosophy of comparative religion. Then, after having decided that, the
second point which the learned Judges will have to direct their attention
to will be whether this elementary philosophy is calculated to broaden the
minds of the pupils or to narrow their minds. Then they will have to decide
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 48 of 116
upon the scope of every word, this being a justiciable right which has to
be adjudicated upon by them. I have no doubt members of my profession will
be very glad to throw considerable light on what is and is not a
justiciable right of this nature (A Member: For a fee). Yes, for very good
fee too." (See -- Constitutional Assembly Debates Official Report.
Reprinted by Lok Sabha Secretariat)
163. It may be noted that at the time when the Constituent Assembly was
framing the Constitution of India the strength of Judges of Supreme Court
was not contemplated as eleven Judges. It appears what Shri Munshi stated
was prophetic or a mere co-incidence. Today eleven Judges of the Supreme
Court have assembled to decide the question of rights of the minorities.
Question No. 1. What is the meaning and content of the expression of
"minorities in Article 30 of the Constitution of India?
164. The first question that is required to be answered by this Bench is
who is a minority. The expression "minority" has been derived from the
Latin word "minor" and the suffix "ity" which means "small in number".
According tot Encyclopaedia Britannica ’minorities’ means "groups held
together by ties of common descent, language or religious faith and feeling
different in these respects from the majority of the inhabitants of a given
political entity". J.A. Laponee in his book "The Protection to Minority"
describes ’Minority’ as a group of persons having different race, language
or religion from that of majority of inhabitants. In the Year Book on Human
Rights U.N. Publication 1950 ed. minority has been described as non
dominant groups having different religion or linguistic traditions than the
majority population.
165. The expression minority has not been defined in the Constitution. As a
matter of fact when Constitution was being drafted Shri T.T.
Krishanamachari one of the members of the Constituent Assembly proposed an
amendment which runs as under:
"That in Part XVI of the Constitution, for the word "minorities" where it
occurs, the word "certain classes" be substitued."
166. We find that expression ‘minorities’ has been employed only at four
places in the Constitution of India. Head note of Article 29 uses the word
minorities. Then again the expressions Minorities or minority have been
employed in head note of Article 30 and sub clauses (1) and (2) of Article
30. However, omission to define minorities in the Constitution does not
mean that the employment of words ‘minorities’ or ‘minority’ in Article 30
is of less significance. At this stage it may be noted that the expression
‘minorities’ has been used in Article 30 in two senses - one based on
religion and other on basis of language. However prior to coming into force
of the Constitution the expression minority was understood in terms of a
class based on religion having different electorates. When India attained
freedom, the framers of the Constitution threw away the idea of having
separate electorates based on religion and decided to have a system of
joint electorates so that every candidate in an election would have to seek
support of all sections of the constituency. In turn special safeguards
were provided to minorities and they were made part of Chapter III of the
Constitution with a view to instill a sense of confidence and security to
the minorities.
167. But the question arises what is the test to determine minority status
based on religion or language of a group of persons residing in a State or
Union Territory. Whether minority status of a given group of persons has to
be determined in relation to the population of the whole of India or
population of the State where the said group of persons is residing. When
the Constitution of India was being framed it was decided that India would
be Union of States and Constitution to be adopted would be of federal
character. India is a country where many ethnic or religious and multi
language people reside. Shri K.M. Munshi one of the members of Constituent
Assembly in his Note and Draft Article on (Right to Religion and Cultural
Freedom) referred to minorities as national minorities. The said draft
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 49 of 116
Article VI (3) runs as under:
"(3) Citizens belonging to national minorities in a State whether based on
religion or language have equal rights with other citizens in forming
controlling and administering at their own expense; charitable, religious
and social institutions, schools and other educational establishments with
the free use of their language and practice of their religions."
168. Dr. B.R. Ambedkar while intervening in debate in regard to amendment
to draft Article 23 which related to the rights of religious and linguistic
minorities stated that "the term ‘minority’ was used therein not in the
technical sense of the word minority as we have been accustomed to use it
for purposes of certain political safeguards, such as representation in the
legislature, representation in the services and so on". According to him,
the word minority is used not merely to indicate, the minority in technical
sense of the word, it is also used to cover minorities which are not
minorities in the technical sense but which are nonetheless minorities in
the cultural and linguistic sense. Dr. Ambedkar cited following example
which runs as under:
"For instance, for the purposes of this Article 23, if a certain number of
people from Madras came and settled in Bombay for certain purposes, they
would be, although not a minority in the technical sense, cultural
minorities. Similarly, if a certain number of Maharashtrians went from
Maharashtra and settled in Bengal, although they may not be minorities in
technical true sense, they would be cultural and linguistic minorities in
Bengal.
The Article intends to give protection in the matter of culture, language
and script not only to a minority technically, but also to a minority in
the wider sense of the term as I have explained just now. That is the
reason why we dropped the word minority because we felt that the word might
be interpreted in the narrow sense of the term when the intention of this
House, when it passed Article 18, was to use the word "minority" in a much
wider sense, so as to give cultural protection to those who were
technically not minorities but minorities nonetheless." (See Constitutional
Assembly Debates Official Report reprinted by Lok Sabha Secretariat)
169. The draft article and the Constituent Assembly Debates in unambiguous
terms show that minority status of a group of persons has to be determined
on the basis of population of a State or Union Territory.
170. Further a perusal of Articles 350A and 350B which were inserted by the
Constitution (7th Amendment) Act 1956 indicates that the status of
linguistic minorities has to be determined as state-wise linguistic
minorities/groups. Thus the intention of the framers of the Constitution
and subsequent amendments in the Constitution indicate that protection was
conferred not only to religious minorities but also to linguistic
minorities on basis of their number in a State (unit) where they intend to
establish an institution of their choice. It was not contemplated that
status of linguistic minority has to be judged on basis of population of
the entire country. If the status of linguistic minorities has to be
determined on basis of the population of the country, the benefit of
Article 30 has to be extended to those who are in majority in their own
States.
171. The question who are minorities arose for the first time in the case
of Kerala Education Bill case 1959 SCR P.995 at 1047-50. In the said
decision it was contended by the State of Kerala that in order to
constitute a minority who may claim protection of Article 30(1) persons or
group of persons must numerically be minority in the particular region in
which the educational institution in question is or is intended to be
situated. Further according to State of Kerala, Anglo-Indians or Christians
or Muslims of that locality taken as a unit, will not be a minority within
the meaning of the Article and will not, therefore, be entitled to
establish and maintain educational institutions of their choice in that
locality, but if some of the members belonging to the Anglo Indian or
Christians community happen to reside in another ward of the same
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 50 of 116
municipality and their number be less than that of the members of other
communities residing there, then those numbers of Anglo-Indian or
Christians community will be a minority within the meaning of Article 30
and will be entitled to establish and maintain educational institution of
their choice in that locality. Repelling the argument this Court held
thus:-
"We need not however, on this occasion go further into the matter and enter
upon a discussion and express a final opinion as to whether education being
a State subject being item 11 of List II of the Seventh Schedule to the
Constitution subject only to the provisions of entries 62, 63, 64 and 66 of
List land entry 25 of List 111, the existence of a minority community
should in all circumstances and for purposes of all laws of that State be
determined on the basis of the population of the whole State or whether it
should be determined on the State basis only when the validity of a law
extending to the whole State is in question or whether it should be
determined on the basis of the population of a particular locality when the
law under attack applies only to that locality, for the Bill before us
extends to the whole of the State of Kerala and consequently the minority
must be determined by reference to the entire population of that State. By
this test Christians, Muslims and Anglo-Indians will certainly be
minorities in the State of Kerala."
172. In A.M. Patroni v. E.C. Kesavan it was held as this:
"6. The contention of the petitioners is that they have an exclusive right
to administer the institution under Article 30(1) of the Constitution and
that the order of the Director of Public Instruction constitutes violation
of that right. Clause (1) of Article 30 provides that all minorities,
whether based on religion of language, shall have the right to establish
and administer educational institutions of their choice; and clause (2)
that the State shall not, in granting aid to educational institutions,
discriminate against any educational institution on the ground that it is
under the management of a minority, whether based on religion or language.
The word "minority" is not defined in the Constitution; and in the absence
of any special definition we must hold that any community, religious or
linguistic, which is numerically less than fifty per cent of the population
of the State is entitled to the fundamental right guaranteed by the
article."
173. The view that in a state where a group of persons having distinct
language is numerically less than fifty per cent of population of that
state are to be treated as linguistic minority was accepted by the
Government of India and implemented while determining the minority status
of persons or group of persons and the same is evident from the views
expressed by Government of India before the Special Rapporteur of the U.N.
Sub- Commission on Prevention of Discrimination and Protection of
Minorities, when he was collecting information relating to the study on the
concept of Minority and cope of the ICCPR 1966.
174. The Special Rapporteur in his report "Study on the Rights of Persons
Belonging to Ethnic Religious and Linguistic Minorities" published by the
Centre for Human Rights. Geneva states on the interpretation of the term
"Minority" as thus:
"For the purposes of the study, an ethnic, religious or linguistic minority
is a group numerically smaller than the rest of the population of the State
to which it belongs and possessing cultural, physical or historical
characteristics, a religion or a language different from those of the rest
of the population."
175. In the said report, views of the Government of India which was based
on decision of Kerala High Court in the case of A.M. Paatroni was referred
to which runs as under:
"(39) In India, the Kerala High Court, after observing that the
Constitution granted specific rights to minorities, declared that "in the
absence of any special definition we must hold that any community religious
or linguistic, which is numerically less than 50% of the population of the
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 51 of 116
State is entitled to the rights guaranteed by the Constitution".
176. However in the case of D.A.V. College v. State of Punjab 1971 Suppl.
S.C.R. p.688 at 697, an argument was raised that minority status of a
person or group of persons either religious or linguistic is to be
determined by taking into consideration the entire population of the
country. While dealing with the said argument this Court held as follow:
"Though, there was a faint attempt to canvas the position that religious or
linguistic minorities should be minorities in relation to the entire
population of the country, in our view they are to be determined only in
relation to the particular legislation which is sought to be impugned,
namely that if it is the State legislature these minorities have to be
determined in relation to the population of the State".
177. It may be noted that in the case of D.A.V.College (supra), this Court
was dealing with the State legislation and in that context observed that if
it is the state legislation, minority status has to be determined in
relation to the population of the State. However, curiously enough, there
is no discussion that if the particular legislation sought to be impugned
is a central legislation, minority status has to be tested in relation to
the population of the whole of the country. In the absence of any such
discussion it cannot be inferred that if there is a central legislation,
the minority status of a group of persons has to be determined in relation
to the entire population of the country.
178. In the year 1976 by Fourty-Second Amendment Act, the Entries 11 and 25
of List II of Seventh Schedule relating to Education and Vocational and
Technical Training Labour respectively were transferred to the Concurrent
List as Entry No. 25. In the Constitution of India as enacted Entries 11
and 25 of List II were as under:
Entry 11
"Education including Universities subject to the provisions of Entries 63,
64, 65 and 66 of List I and Entry 25 of List III".
Entry 25
"Vocational or Technical training of labour".
179. By the Constitution (42nd Amendment) Act, 1976 Entry 25 of List III
was substituted by the following entry viz:
Entry 25
"Education including technical education, medical education and
universities subject to the provisions of Entries 63, 64, 65 and 66 of List
I; vocational and technical training of Labour".
And Entry 11 of List II was omitted.
180. On 6.2.1997 when these matters came up before a Bench of seven Judges
of this court, the Bench passed an order which runs as under:
"In view of the 42nd Amendment to the Constitution placing with effect from
3.1.1977 the subject "Education in Entry 25 List III of the 7th Schedule to
the Constitution and the quoted decisions of the Larger Benches of this
Court being of the pre amendment era, the answer to the brooding question,
as to who in the context constitutes a minority, has become one of the
utmost significance and therefore, it is appropriate that these matters are
placed before a Bench of at least 11 Hon’ble Judges for determining the
questions involved".
181. It is for the aforesaid reasons this question has been placed before
this Bench.
182. In view of the referring order the question that arises for
consideration is whether the transposition of the subject Education from
List II to List III has brought change to the test determining who are
minorities for the purposes of Article 30 of the Constitution.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 52 of 116
183. It may be remembered that various entries in three lists of the
Seventh Schedule are not powers of legislation but field of legislation.
These entries are mere legislative heads and demarcate the area over which
the appropriate legislatures are empowered to enact law. The power to
legislate is given to the appropriate legislature by Article 246 and other
articles. Article 245 provides that subject to the provisions of the
Constitution, Parliament may make laws for the whole or any part of the
territory of India and the legislature of a State may make laws for whole
or any part of the State. Under Article 246 Parliament has exclusive power
to make law with respect to any of the matters enumerated in List I in the
Seventh Schedule. Further under clause (2) of Article 246 Parliament and
subject to clause (1) the legislature of any State are empowered to make
law with respect to any of the matters enumerated in List III Seventh
Schedule and under clause (3) of Article 246, the legislature of any State
is empowered to enact law with respect to any of the matters enumerated in
List II in the Seventh Schedule subject to clauses (1) and (2). From the
aforesaid provisions it is clear that it is Article 246 and other Articles
which either empower Parliament or State Legislature to enact law and not
the Entries finding place in three Lists of Seventh Schedule. Thus the
function of entries in three lists of the Seventh Schedule is to demarcate
the area over which the appropriate legislatures can enact laws but do not
confer power either on Parliament or State Legislatures to enact laws. It
may be remembered, by transfer of Entries, the character of entries is not
lost or destroyed. In this view of the matter by transfer of contents of
entry 11 of List II to List III as entry 25 has not denuded the power of
State Legislature to enact law on the subject ‘Education’ but has also
conferred power on Parliament to enact law on the subject "Education".
Article 30 confers fundamental right to linguistic and religious minorities
to establish and administer educational institutions of their choice. The
test who are linguistic or religious minorities within the meaning of
Article 30 would be one and the same either in relation to a State
legislation or Central legislation. There cannot be two tests one in
relation to Central legislation and other in relation to State legislation.
Therefore, the meaning assigned to linguistic or religious minorities would
not be different when the subject "Education" has been transferred to the
Concurrent List from the State List. The test who are linguistic or
religious minorities as settled in Kerala Education Bill’s case continues
to hold good even after the subject "Education" was transposed into Entry
25 List III of Seventh Schedule by the 42nd Amendment Act. If we give
different meaning to the expression "minority" occurring in Article 30 in
relation to a central legislation, the very purpose for which protection
has been given to minority would disappear. The matter can be examined from
another angle. It is not disputed that there can be only one test for
determining minority status of either linguistic or religious minority. It
is, therefore, not permissible to argue that the test to determine the
status of linguistic minority would be different than the religious
minorities. If it is not so, each linguistic State would claim protection
of Article 30 in its own State in relation to a central legislation which
was not the intention of framers of the Constitution nor the same is borne
out from language of Article 30. I am, therefore, of the view that the test
for determining who are the minority, either linguistic or religious, has
to be determined independently of which is the law, Central or State.
184. In view of what has been stated above, my conclusion on the question
who are minorities either religious or linguistic within the meaning of
Article 30 is as follows:
The person or persons establishing an educational institution who belong to
either religious or linguistic group who are less than fifty per cent of
total population of the state in which educational institutional is
established would be linguistic or religious minorities.
Conflict between ARTICLE 29(2) AND ARTICLE 30(1) - whether Article 30(1) is
subject to Article 29(2). What are the contents of Article 30(1)?
185. The issue in hand is full of complexities and an answer is not simple.
Under Article 30(1), linguistic or religious minorities’ fundamental rights
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 53 of 116
to establish and administer educational institution of their choice have
been protected. Such institutions are of three categories. First category
of institutions are the institutions which neither take government aid nor
are recognised by the State or by the University. Second category of
institutions are those which do not take financial assistance from the
government but seek recognition either from the State or the University or
bodies recognised by the government for that purpose and the third category
of institutions which seek both government aid as well as recognition from
the State or the University.
186. Here, I am concerned with the third category of minority institutions
and my answer to the question is confined to the said category of minority
educational institutions.
187. It is urged on behalf of the minority institutions that Article 30(1)
confers an absolute right on linguistic or religious minorities to
establish and administer educational institutions of their choice.
According to them, the expression ‘choice’ indicates that one of the
purposes of establishing educational institutions is to give secular
education to the children of minority communities and, therefore, such
institutions are not precluded from denying admission to members of non-
minority communities on grounds only of religion, race, caste, language or
any of them. In nutshell, the argument is that Article 30(1) is not subject
to Article 29(2). Whereas, the argument of learned Solicitor General and
other learned counsel is that any minority institution receiving government
aid is bound by the mandate of Article 29(2) and such a minority
institution cannot discriminate between the minority and majority while
admitting students in such institutions. According to them, Article 30(1)
does not confer an absolute right on the institutions set up by the
linguistic or religious minorities receiving government aid and such
institutions cannot extend preference to the members of their own community
in the matter of admission of students in the institutions.
188. The question, therefore, arises whether minority institutions
receiving government aid are subject to provisions of Article 29(2).
189. Learned counsel for the parties has pressed into service various rules
of constructions for interpreting Article 29(2) and Article 30(1) in their
own way. No doubt, various rules of construction laid down by the courts
have been of considerable assistance as they are based on human experience.
The precedents show that by taking assistance from rule of interpretations,
the courts have solved many problems. We, therefore, propose to take
assistance of judicial decisions as well as settled rules of interpretation
while interpreting Articles 29(2) and 30(1) of the Constitution.
190. After the Constitution of India came into force, Articles 29 and 30
came up for interpretation before various High Courts and the Apex Court.
There appears to be no unanimity amongst the judicial decisions rendered by
the courts as regards the extent of right conferred by Article 30(1). One
line of decisions is that minority institutions receiving government aid
are bound by constitutional mandate enshrined in article 29(2). The second
line of decisions is that minority institutions receiving government aid
while admitting students from their own communities in the institutions
established by them are free to admit students from other communities --
belonging to majority, and such admission of students in the institution do
not destroy the minority character of the institution. The third line of
decisions is that under Article 30(1) fundamental right declared in terms
is absolute although it was not decided whether Article 30(1) is subject to
Article 29(2) or not. However, the view in the said decisions is that the
right conferred under Article 30(1) is an absolute right. The fourth line
of decision is that there can be no communal reservation for admission in
Govt. or government aided institutions. The aforesaid categories of
decisions shall hereinafter be referred to as first, second, third and
fourth category of decisions.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 54 of 116
191. The first decision in first category of decisions of this Court is The
State of Bombay v. Bombay Education Society & Ors. In this case, a Society
consisting of members of Anglo-Indian community whose mother tongue was
English set up an institution in the then State of Bombay. The State of
Bombay in the year 1955 issued an Order that no school shall admit to class
where English is used as a medium of instruction any pupil other than a
pupil belonging to a section of citizens the language of which is English
namely, Anglo-Indians and citizens of non- Asiatic descent. One of the
members of the Christian community sought admission in the school on the
premise that his mother tongue was English. He was refused admission in
view of the aforesaid Government Order, as the student was neither an
Anglo-Indian whose mother tongue was English nor a citizen of non-Asiatic
descent. This was challenged by means of a petition under Article 226
before the Bombay High Court and the Govt. order was struck down. On appeal
to the Apex Court, this Court held thus:
"Article 29(1) gives protection to any section of the citizens having a
distinct language, script or culture by guaranteeing their right to
conserve the same. Article 30(1) secures to all minorities whether based on
religion or language, the right to establish and administer educational
institutions of their choice. Now, suppose the State maintains an
educational institution to help conserving the distinct language, script or
culture of a section of the citizens or makes grants-in-aid of an
educational institution established by a minority community based on
religion or language to conserve their distinct language, script or culture
who can claim the protection of Article 29(2) in the matter of admission
into any such institution.? Surely, the citizens of the very section whose
language, script or culture is sought to be conserved by the institution or
the citizen who belonged to the minority group which has established and is
administering the institution, do not need any protection against
themselves and therefore, Article 29(2) is not designed for the protection
of this section or this minority. Nor do we see any reason to limit article
29(2) to citizens belonging to a minority group other than the section or
the minorities referred to in article 29(1) or article 30(1), for the
citizens, who do not belong to any minority group, may quite conceivably
need this protection just as much as the citizens of such other minority
groups. If it is urged that the citizens of the majority group are amply
protected by article 15 and do not require the protection of article 29(2),
then there are several obvious answers to that argument. The language of
article 29(2) is wide and unqualified and may well cover all citizens
whether they belong to the majority or minority group. Article 15 protects
all citizens against the State whereas the protection of article 29(2)
extents against the State or any body who denies the right conferred by it.
Further article 15 protects all citizens against discrimination generally,
but article 29(2) is a protection against a particular species of wrong
namely denial of admission into educational institutions of the specified
kind. In the next place article 15 is quite general and wide in its terms
and applies to all citizens, whether they belong to the majority or
minority groups, and gives protection to all the citizens against
discrimination by the State on certain specific grounds. Article 29(2)
confers a special right on citizens for admission into educational
institutions maintained or aided by the State. To limit this right only to
citizens belonging to minority groups will be to provide a double
protection for such citizens and to hold that the citizens of the majority
group have no special educational rights in the nature of a right to be
admitted into an educational institution for the maintenance of which they
make contributions by way of taxes. We see no cogent reason for such
discrimination.
(emphasis supplied)
192. In Re Kerala Education Bill, 1957 - 1959 SCR 995, it was held thus:
"Under clause (1) of Article 29 any section of the citizens residing in the
territory of India or any part thereof having a distinct language, script
or culture of its own has the right to conserve the same. It is obvious
that a minority community can effectively conserve its language, script or
culture by and through educational institutions and, therefore, the right
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 55 of 116
to establish and maintain educational institutions of its choice is a
necessary concomitant to the right to conserve its distinctive language,
script or culture and that is what is conferred on all minorities by
Article 30(1) which has hereinbefore been quoted in full. This right
however, is subject to clause 2 of Article 29 which provides that no
citizen shall be denied admission into any educational institution
maintained by the State or receiving aid out of State funds on grounds only
of religion, race, caste, language or any of them."
(emphasis supplied)
193. After holding that Article 30(1) is subject to clause (2) of Article
29, this Court further held thus:
"There is no such limitation in Article 30(1) and to accept this limitation
will necessarily involve the addition of the words "for their own
community" in the Article which is ordinarily not permissible according to
well established rules of interpretation. Nor is it reasonable to assume
that the purpose of Article 29(2) was to deprive minority educational
institutions of the aid they receive from the State. To say that an
institution which receives aid on account of its being a minority
educational institution must not refuse to admit any member of any other
community only on the grounds therein mentioned and then to say that as
soon as such institution admits such an outsider it will cease to be a
minority institution is tantamount to saying that minority institutions
will not, as minority institutions, be entitled to any aid. The real import
of Article 29(2) and Article 30(1) seems to us to be that they clearly
contemplate a minority institution with a sprinkling of outsiders admitted
into it. By admitting a non- member into it the minority institution does
not shed its character and cease to be a minority institution."
(emphasis supplied)
194. In D.A.V. College etc. v. Punjab State & Ors. 1971 (suppl.) S.C.R.
p.688 it was held thus:
"A reading of these two Articles together would lead us to conclude that a
religious or linguistic minority has a right to establish and administer
educational institutions of its choice for effectively conserving its
distinctive language, script or culture, which right however is subject to
the regulatory power of the State for maintaining and facilitating the
excellence of its standards. This right is further subject to clause (2) of
Article 29 which provides that no citizen shall be denied admission into
any educational institution which is maintained by the State or receives
aid out of State funds. on grounds only of religion, race, caste, language
or any of them. While this is so these two articles are not inter-linked
nor does it permit of their being always read together."
195. In St. Stephen’s College v. University of Delhi, Shetty J. speaking
for the majority held that Article 29(2) applies to minority as well as
non-minority institutions.
196. From the decisions referred to above, the principles that emerge are
these:
(1) Article 29(2) confers right on the citizens for admission into
educational institution maintained or aided by the State without
discrimination. To limit this right only to citizens belonging to minority
group will be to provide double protection for such citizens and to hold
that citizens of the majority group have no special educational rights in
the nature of a right to be admitted into an educational institution for
maintenance of which they make contribution by way of taxes. There is no
reason for such discrimination;
(2) Article 30(1) is subject to Article 29(2); and
(3) the real import of Articles 29(2) and 30(1) is that they clearly
contemplate minority institutions with the sprinkling of the outsiders
admitted into it and by admitting the non- minority into it, the minority
institutions do not shed its character and cease to be minority
institutions.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 56 of 116
197. The first decision in the second category of cases is in Fev. Father
W. Proost & Ors. v. The State of Bihar & Ors. It was held therein that the
right of minority to establish educational institutions of their choice
under Article 30(1) is not so limited as not to admit members of other
communities. Such minority institutions while admitting members from their
own community are free to admit members of non-minority communities. The
expression ‘choice’ includes to admit members from other communities. In
the State of Kerala etc. v. Very Rev. Mother Provincial etc. - 1971(1) SCR
734, it was held that it is permissible that a minority institution while
admitting students from its community may also admit students from majority
community. Admission of such non- minority students would bring income and
the institution need not be turned away to enjoy the protection.
198. The legal principle that emerges from the aforesaid decisions is that
a minority institution while admitting members from its own community is
free to admit students from non-minority community also.
199. The first decision in the third category of cases is Rev. Sidhajbhai
Sabhai & Ors. v. State of Bombay & Anr.. In the said decision. although the
question as to whether Article 30(1) is subject to Article 29(2) was not
considered, yet it was held that under Article 30(1) fundamental right
declared in terms absolute. It was also held that unlike fundamental
freedoms guaranteed under Article 19 it is not subject to reasonable
restrictions. It is intended to be a real right for the protection of
minorities in the matter of setting up of educational institutions of their
own choice. The right is intended to be effective and not to be whittled
down by so-called regulatory measures conceived in the interest not of the
minority educational institution, but of the public or the nation as a
whole.
200. In Rt. Rev. Magr. Mark Netto v. Government of Kerala & ors., a
question arose whether Regional Deputy Director of Public Instructions can
refuse permission to a minority institution to admit girl students. This
Court while held that refusal to grant permission was violative of Article
30(1).
201. The legal principles that emerges from the aforesaid category of
decisions are these:
(1) that article 30(1) is absolute in terms and the said right cannot be
whittled by down regulatory measures conceived in the interest not of
minority institutions but of public or the nation as a whole; and
(2) the power of refusal to admit a girl student in a boy’s minority
institution is violative of Article 30(1).
202. The fourth category of cases is the decision in the State of Madras v.
Srimathi Champakam Dorairajan etc. 1951 SCR 525 wherein it was held thus:
"This Court in the context of communal reservation of seats in medical
colleges run by the government was of the view that the intention of the
Constitution was not to introduce communal consideration in matters of
admission into any educational institution maintained by the State or
receiving aid out of State funds. However, it may be noted that this case
was in relation to an institution referred to in Article 30(1) but has been
cited for the purpose that there cannot be communal reservation in the
educational institution receiving aid out of State funds."
(emphasis supplied)
203. From the aforesaid four categories of decisions, it appears that there
is not a single decision of this Court where it has been held that Article
30(1) is not subject to Article 29(2). On the contrary there are bulk of
decisions of this Court holding that minority institution cannot refuse
admission of members of non-minority community and Article 30(1) is subject
to Article 29(2). If I go by precedent, it must be held that Article 30(1)
is subject to Article 29(2). However, learned counsel for minority
institutions strongly relied upon the decision in the case of Rev.
Sidhajbai (supra) and argued that once Article 30(1) is fundamental right
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 57 of 116
declared absolute in terms, it cannot be subjected to Article 29(2). Since
this Bench is of eleven Judges and decisions of this Court holding that
Article 30(1) is subject to Article 29(2) are by lesser number of Judges I
shall examine the question independently.
204. One of the known methods to interpret a provision of an enactment of
the Constitution is to look into the historical facts or any document
preceding the legislation.
205. Earlier, to interpret a provision of the enactment or the Constitution
on the basis of historical facts or any document preceding the legislation
was very much frowned upon, but by passage of time, such injunction has
been relaxed.
206. In His Holiness Kesavananda Bharati Sripadagalvaru etc. v. State of
Kerala & Anr. Etc. , it was held that the Constituent Assembly debates
although not conclusive, yet the intention of framers of the Constitution
in enacting provisions of the Constitution can throw light in ascertaining
the intention behind such provision.
207. In R.S. Nayak v. A.R. Antulay , it was held thus:
"Reports of the Committee which preceded the enactment of a legislation,
reports of Joint Parliament Committee, report of a commission set up for
collecting information leading to the enactment are permissible external
aids to construction. If the basic purpose underlying construction of
legislation is to ascertain the real intention of the Parliament, why
should the aids which Parliament availed of such as report of a Special
Committee preceding the enactment, existing state of Law, the environment
necessitating enactment of legislation, and the object sought to be
achieved, be denied to Court whose function is primarily to give effect to
the real intention of the Parliament in enacting the legislation. Such
denial would deprive the Court of a substantial and illuminating aid to
construction.
The modern approach has to a considerable extent croded the exclusionary
rule even in England."
208. Thus, the accepted view appears to be that the report of the
Constituent Assembly debates can legitimately be taken into consideration
for construction of the provisions of the Act or the Constitution. In that
view of the matter, it is necessary to look into the Constituent Assembly
debates which led to enacting Articles 29 and 30 of the Constitution.
209. The genesis of the provisions of Articles 29 and 30 needs to be looked
into in their two historical stages to focus them in their true
perspective. The first stage relates to pre-partition deliberations in the
Committees and Constituent Assembly and the second stage after the
partition of the country. On 27th of February, 1947, several Committees
were formed for the purpose of drafting Constitution of India and on the
same day, the Advisory Committee appointed a Sub-Committee on minorities
with a view to submit its report with regard to the rights of the
minorities. Before the Fundamental Rights Sub-Committee, Shri K.M. Munshi -
one of its members wanted certain rights for minorities being incorporated
in the fundamental rights. He was advised by the Fundamental Rights
Committee that the said report regarding rights of minorities may be placed
before the Minority Sub- Committee. On April 16, 1947, Shri K.M. Munshi
circulated a letter to the members of the Sub-Committee on minorities
recommending that certain fundamental rights of minorities be incorporated
in the Constitution. The recommendations contained in the said letter run
as under:
"1. All citizens are entitled to the use of their mother tongue and the
script thereof and to adopt, study or use any other language and script of
his choice.
2. Citizens belonging to national minorities in a State whether based on
religion or language have equal rights with other citizens in forming,
controlling and administering at their own expense, charitable, religious
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 58 of 116
and social institutions, schools and other educational establishment with
the free use of their language and practice of their religion.
(emphasis supplied)
3. Religious instruction shall not be compulsory for a member of a
community which does not profess such religion.
4. It shall be the duty of every unit to provide in the public educational
system in towns and districts in which a considerable proportion of
citizens of other than the language of the unit are residents, adequate
facilities for ensuring that in the primary schools the instruction shall
be given to the children of such citizens through the medium of their own
language.
Nothing in this clause shall be deemed to prevent the unit from making the
teaching of the national language in the variant and script of the choice
of the pupil obligatory in the schools.
5. No legislation providing state aid for schools shall discriminate
against schools under the management of minorities whether based on
religion or language.
6. (a) Notwithstanding any custom or usage or prescription, all Hindus
without any distinction of caste or denomination shall have the right of
access to and worship in all public Hindu temples, choultries, dharmasalas,
bathing ghats, and other religious places.
(b) Rules of personal purity and conducted prescribed for admission to and
worship in these religious places shall in no way discriminate against or
impose any disability on any person on the ground that he belongs to impure
or inferior caste or menial class.
210. One of the reasons for recommendation of the aforesaid rights was the
Polish Treaty forming part of Poland’s Constitution which was a reaction to
an attempt in Europe and elsewhere to prevent minorities from using or
studying their own language. The aforesaid recommendations were then placed
before the Minority Sub-Committee. The Minority Sub-Committee submitted its
report amongst other subjects on cultural, educational and fundamental
rights of minorities which may be incorporated at the appropriate places in
the Constitution of India. The recommendations of the said Sub-Committee
were these:
(i) All citizens are entitled to use their mother tongue and the scrip
thereof, and to adopt, study or use any other language and script of their
choice;
(ii) Minorities in every unit shall be adequately protected in respect of
their language and culture, and no government may enact any laws or
regulations that may act oppressively or prejudicially in this respect;
(iii) No minority whether of religion, community or language shall be
deprived of its rights or discriminated against in regard to the admission
into State educational institutions, nor shall any religious instruction be
compulsorily imposed on them;
(iv) All minorities whether of religion, community or language shall be
free in any unit to establish and administer educational institutions of
their choice and they shall be entitled to State aid in the same manner and
measure as is given to similar State-aided institutions;
(v) Notwithstanding any custom, law, decree or usage, presumption or terms
of dedication, no Hindu on grounds of caste, birth or denomination shall be
precluded from entering in educational institutions dedicated or intended
for the use of the Hindu community or any section thereof;
(vi) No disqualification shall arise on account of sex in respect of public
serve or professions or admission to educational institutions save and
except that this shall not prevent the establishment of separate
educational institutions for boys and girls."
211. Initially, Shri G.B. Pant was of the view that these minority rights
should be made to form part of unjusticiable Directive Principles, but on
intervention of Shri K.M. Munshi those minority rights were included in the
fundamental rights chapter. On 22nd April, 1947, the report of Minority
Sub-Committee was placed before the Advisory Committee. The Advisory
Committee, inter alia, recommended that Clause 16 which corresponds to
Article 28 of the Constitution should be re-drafted as follows:
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 59 of 116
"All persons are equally entitled to freedom of conscience and the right
freely to profess, practise and propagate religion subject order, morality
or health, and to the other provisions of this chapter."
212. The Advisory Committee then considered the recommendations of the Sub-
Committee and it was resolved to insert the following clauses among the
justiciable fundamental rights:
"(1) Minorities in every unit shall be protected in respect of their
language script and culture, and no laws or regulations may be enacted that
may operate oppressively or prejudicially in this respect;
(2) No minority whether based on religion, community or language shall be
discriminated against in regard to the admission into State educational
institutions, nor shall any religious instruction be compulsorily imposed
on them;
(3)(a) All minorities whether based on religion, community or language
shall be free in any unit to establish and administer educational
institutions of then choice;
(b) The State shall not while providing State aid to schools discriminate
against schools under the management of minorities whether based on
religion, community or language."
This became Clause 18.
213. The recommendations of the Advisory Committee were then placed before
the Constituent Assembly which met on 1st May, 1947. When Clause 18 was
moved by Shri Sardar Vallabhabhai Patel for adoption by the House, several
members were of the view that Clause 18 may be referred back to the
Advisory Committee for reconsideration in the light of discussion that took
place on that day. However, Shri K.M. Munshi--another member of the
Constituent Assembly suggested that only Sub-clause (2) of Clause 18 be
referred back to the Advisory Committee for reconsideration. Ultimately,
the amendment moved by Shri K.M. Munshi was adopted and Sub-clause (2) of
Clause 18 was referred back to the Advisory Committee for reconsideration.
Thereafter Clause 18(1) and Clause 18(3) were accepted without any
amendment.
214. The Advisory Committee re-considered Clause 18(2) and recommended that
Clause 18(2) be retained after deleting the words "nor shall any religious
instruction be compulsorily imposed on them" as the said provision was
already covered by Clause 16. Thus, Sub-clause (2) was placed before the
House on 30th August, 1947 for being adopted along with the recommendation
of the Advisory Committee. When the matter was taken up Mrs. Purnima
Banerji proposed the following amendments that after the word ’State’ the
words ’and State-aided’ be inserted. While proposing the said amendment,
Mrs. Banerji stated thus:
"The purpose of the amendment is that no minority, whether based on
community or religion shall be discriminated against in regard to the
admission into State-aided and State educational institutions. Many of the
provinces, e.g. U.P., have passed resolutions laying down that no
educational institution will forbid the entry of any members of any
community merely on the ground that they happened to belong to a particular
community--even if that institution is maintained by a donor who has
specified that that institution should only cater for members of his
particular community. If that institution seeks State aid, it must allow
members of other communities to enter into it. In the olden days, in the
Anglo-Indian schools (it was laid down that though those schools would be
given to Indians. In the latest report adopted by this House it is laid
down at 40 per cent. I suggest Sir, that if this clause is included without
the amendment in the Fundamental Rights, it will be a step backward and
many provinces who have taken a step forward will have to retrace their
steps. We have many institutions conducted by very philanthropic people,
who have left large sums of money at their disposal. While we welcome such
donations, when a principle has been laid down that, if any institution
receives State aid, it cannot discriminate or refuse admission to members
of other communities, then it should be follow. We know, Sir, that many a
Province has got provincial feelings. If this provision is included as a
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 60 of 116
fundamental right, I suggest it will be highly detrimental. The Honourable
Mover has not told us what was the reason why he specifically excluded
State-aided institutions from this clause. If he had explained it, probably
the House would have been convinced. I hop that all the educationist and
other members of this House will support my amendment."
(emphasis supplied)
215. The amendment proposed by Mrs. Banerji was supported by Pandit Hirday
Nath Kunzra and other members. However, on intervention of Shri Vallabhbhai
Patel, the following Clause 18(2) as proposed by the Advisory Committee was
adopted:
"18(2). No minority whether based on religion, community or language shall
be discriminated against in regard to the admission into state educational
institutions."
216. After Clause 18(2) was adopted by the Constituent Assembly, the same
was referred to the Constitution Drafting Committee of which Dr. B.R.
Ambedkar was the Chairman. The Drafting Committee while drafting Clause 18
deleted the word ’minority’ from Clause 18(1) and the same was substituted
by the words ’any section of the citizens". However, rest of the clause as
adopted by the Constituent Assembly was retained. Clause 18(1), (2) and (3)
(a) & (b) were transposed in Article 23 of the Draft Constitution of India.
Article 23 of the Draft Constitution of India runs as under:
Cultural and Educational Rights
"23. (1) Any section of the citizens residing in the territory of India or
any part thereof having a distinct language, script and culture of its own
shall have the right to conserve the same.
(2) No minority whether based on religion, community or language shall be
discriminated against in regard to the admission of any person belonging to
such minority into any educational institution maintained by the State.
(3) (a) All minorities whether based on religion, community or language
shall have the right to establish and administer educational institutions
of their choice.
(b) The State shall not, in granting aid to educational institutions,
discriminate against any educational institution on the ground that it is
under the management of a minority, whether based on religion community or
language."
217. On 8.12.1948, the aforesaid draft Article 23 was placed before the
Constituent Assembly. When draft Article 23 was taken up for debate, Shri
M. Ananthasayanam Ayyangar stated that for the words "no minority"
occurring in Clause 2 of draft Article 23, the words "no citizen or
minority" be substituted. He stated thus:
"I want that all citizens should have the right to enter any public
educational institution. This ought not to be confined to minorities. That
is the object with which I have moved this amendment."
218. It is at that stage, Shri Thakur Dass Bhargava moved amendment No. 26
to amendment No. 687. According to him, for amendment No. 687 of the List
of amendment, the following be substituted:
"No citizen shall be denied admission into any educational institution
maintained by the State or receiving aid out of State funds on grounds only
of religion race, caste, language or any of them."
219. He further stated thus:
"Sir, I find there are three points of difference between this amendment
and the provisions of the section which it seeks to amend. The first is to
put in the words ’no citizen’ for the words ’no minority’. Secondly that
not only the institutions which are maintained by the State will be
included in it, but also such institutions as are receiving aid out of
state funds. Thirdly, we have, instead of the words "religion, community of
language", the words, "religion, race, caste, language or any of them."
Now, Sir, it so happens that the words "no minority" seek to differentiate
the minority from the majority, whereas you would be pleased to see that in
the Chapter the words of the heading are "cultural and educational rights",
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 61 of 116
so that the minority rights as such should not find any place under this
Section. Now if we read Clause (2) it would appear as if the minority had
been given certain definite rights in this clause, whereas the national
interest requires that no majority also should be discriminated again in
this matter. Unfortunately, there is in some matters a tendency that the
minorities as such posses and are given certain special rights which are
denied to the majority. It was the habit of our English masters that they
wanted to create discriminations of this sort between the minority and the
majority. Sometimes the minority said they were discriminated against and
on the other occasions the majority felt the same thing. The amendment
brings the majority and the minority on an equal status.
In educational matters, I cannot understand, from the national point of
view, how any discrimination can be justified in favour of a minority or a
majority. Therefore, what this amendment seeks to do is that the majority
and the minority are brought on the same level. There will be no
discrimination between any member of the minority or majority in so far as
admission to educational institutions are concerned. So I should say that
this is a charter of the liberties for the student-world of the minority
and the majority communities equally.
Now, Sir, the word "community" is sought to be removed from this provision
because "community" has no meaning. If it is a fact that the existence of a
community is determined by some common characteristic and all communities
are covered by the words religion or language, then "community" as such has
no basis. So the word "community" is meaningless and the words substituted
are "race or caste". So this provision is so broadened that on the score of
caste, race, language or religion no discrimination can be allowed.
My submission is that considering the matter from all the standpoints, this
amendment is one which should be accepted unanimously by this House."
220. After Dr. B.R. Ambedkar gave clarification as to why the words "no
minority" were deleted and its place "no section of the citizen" were
substituted in Clause (1) of Draft Article 23. Amendment as proposed by
Shri Thakur Dass Bhargava was put to motion and the same was adopted. Thus
the word ’minority’ was deleted and the same was substituted by the word
’citizen’ and for the words "religion, community or language", the words
"religion, race, caste, language or any of them were substituted. Thus,
Article 23 was split into two Articles-Article 23 containing Clause (1) and
Clause (2) of Article 23 and Sub-clause (a) and (b) of Clause (3) of
Article 23 was numbered as Article 23-A. Subsequently Articles 23 and 23-A
became Articles 29 and 30 respectively. Thus, Article 23, as amended,
became part of the Constitution on 9th December, 1948.
221. The deliberations of the Constituent Assembly show that initially Shri
K.M. Munshi recommended that citizens belonging to national minority in the
State whether based on religion or language have equal rights with other
citizens in setting up and administering at their own expense charitable,
religious and social institutions, schools and other educational
establishments with the free use of their language and practice of their
religion for being incorporated in the proposed Constitution of India. This
was with a view that the members of the majority community who are more in
number may not at any point of time take away the rights of minorities to
establish and administer educational institution of their choice. It was
very much clear that there was a clear intention that the rights given to
minorities under Article 30(1) were to be exercised by them if the
institution established is administered at their own cost and expense. It
is for that reason we find that no educational institution either minority
or majority has any common law right or fundamental right to receive
financial assistance from the government. Non-discriminatory Clause (2) of
Article 30 only provides that the State while giving grant-in-aid to the
educational institutions shall not discriminate against any educational
institution on the ground that it is under the management of a minority,
whether based on religion or language. The subsequent deliberations of the
Constituent Assembly further shows that there was thinking in the minds of
the framers of the Constitution that equality and secularism be given
paramount importance while enacting Article 30(1). It is evident that
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 62 of 116
amendment proposed by Shri Thakur Dass Bhargava which is now Article 29(2)
was a conscious decision taken with due deliberations. The Constituent
Assembly was of the view that originally Clause (2) of draft Article 23
sought to distinguish the minority from majority, whereas in the chapter
the words are ’cultural and educational rights’ and as such the words
’minority’ ought not to have found place in that Article. The reason for
omission of words in Clause (2) of draft Article 23 was that minorities
were earlier given certain rights under that clause where national interest
required that no member of majority also should be discriminated against in
educational matters. It also shows that by the aforesaid amendment
discrimination between minority and majority was done away with and the
amendment has brought the minority and majority in equal footing. The
debate also shows what was originally proposed either in Clause 18(2) or
Article 23(2). The debate further shows that the post partition stage
members of the Constituent Assembly intended to broaden the scope of Clause
(2) of draft Article 23 and never wanted to confine the rights only to the
minorities. The views of the members of the Constituent Assembly were that
if any institution takes aid from the government for establishing and
administering educational institutions it cannot discriminate while
admitting students on the ground of religion, race and caste. It may be
seen that by accepting the amendment proposed by Shri Thakur Dass Bhargava
the scope of Article 29(2) was broadened inasmuch as the interest of
minority - either religious or linguistic was secured and, therefore, the
intention of the framers of the Constitution for enacting Clause (2) of
Article 29(2) was that once a minority institution takes government aid, it
becomes subject to Clause (2) of Article 29.
222. It was then urged that if the intention of the framers of the
Constitution was to make Article 30(1) subject to Article 29(2), the
appropriate place where it should have found place was Article 30(1) itself
rather than in Article 29 and, therefore, Article 29(2) cannot be treated
as an exception to Article 30(1). There is no merit in the contention. It
is earlier noticed that Clause (18) when was placed before the Constituent
Assembly contained the provisions of Article 29(1)(2) and 30(1)(2) and all
were numbered as Clause 18(1) (2) (3)(a) (b). Again when Clause (18) was
transposed in draft Article 23, Article 29(1)(2) and Article 30(1)(2)--both
were together in draft Article 23. Shri Thakur Dass Bhargava’s amendment
which was accepted was in relation to Clause (2) of Article 23 which
ultimately has become Article 29(2). It is for that reason Article 29(2)
finds place in Article 29.
223. It was also urged that if the framers of the Constitution intended to
carve out a exception to Article 30(1), they could have used the words
"subject to the provisions contained in Article 29(2)" in the beginning of
Article 30(1) or could have used the expression "notwithstanding" in the
beginning of Article 29(2) and in absence of such words it cannot be held
that Article 29(2) is an exception to Article 30(1). Reference in this
regard was made to Articles 25 and 26 which contained qualifying words. In
fact, the structural argument was based on the absence of qualifying words
either in Article 29(2) or 30(1). This argument based on structure of
Articles 29(2) and 30(1) has no merit. In fact, it overlooks that the
intention of the framers of the Constitution was to confer rights
consistent with the other members of society and to promote rather than
imperil national interest. it may be noted that there is a difference in
the language of Articles 25 and 26. The qualifying words of Article 25 are
"subject to public order, morality and health and to the other provisions
of this part". The opening words of Article 26 are "subject to public
order, morality and health". The absence of words "to the other provisions
of this part" as occurring in Article 25 in Article 26 does not mean that
Article 26 is over and above other rights conferred in Part-III of the
Constitution. In The Durgah Committee, Ajmer and Anr. v. Syed Hussain Ali
and Ors. -and Tilkayat Shri Govindlalji Maharaj v. The State of Rajasthan
and Ors. -, it has been held that Article 26 is subject to Article 25
irrespective of the fact that the words "subject to other provisions of
this part" occurring in Article 25 is absent in Article 26. For these
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 63 of 116
reasons, it must be held that even if there are no qualifying expression
"subject to other provisions of this part" and "notwithstanding anything"
either in Article 30(1) or Article 29(2), Article 30(1) is subject to
Article 29(2) of the Constitution.
224. There is another factor which shows that Article 30(1) is subject to
Article 29(2). If Article 29(2) is meant for the benefit of minority, there
was no sense in using the word ’caste’ in Article 29(2). The word ’caste’
is unheard of in religious minority communities and, therefore, Article
29(2) was never intended by the framers of the Constitution to confer any
exclusive rights to the minorities.
225. Although Article 30(1) strictly may not be subject to reasonable
restrictions, it cannot be disputed that Article 30(1) is subject to
Article 28(3) and also general laws and the laws made in the interests of
national security, public order, morality and the like governing such
institutions will have to be necessarily read into Article 30(1). In that
view of the matter the decision by this Court in Rev. Sidhajbhai (supra)
that under Article 30(1) fundamental right conferred on minorities is in
terms absolute is not borne out of that Article. It, therefore, cannot be
held that the fundamental right guaranteed under Article 30(1) is absolute
in terms. Thus, looking into the precedents, historical fact and
Constituent Assembly debates and also interpreting Articles 29(2) and 30(1)
contextually and textually, the irrestible conclusion is that Article 30(1)
is subject to Article 29(2) of the Constitution.
226. The question then arises for what purpose the celebrated Article 30(1)
has been incorporated in the Constitution if the linguistic or religious
minorities who establish educational institutions cannot admit their own
students or are precluded from admitting members of their own communities
in their own institution. It is urged that the rights under Article 30(1)
conferred on the minorities was in return to minorities for giving up
demand for separate electorate system in the country. It is also urged that
an assurance was given to the minorities that they would have a fundamental
right to establish and administer educational institution of their choice
and in case the minority cannot admit their own students or members of
their own community it would be breach of the assurance given to the
minorities. There is no denial of the fact that in a democracy the rights
and interest of minorities have to be protected. In the year 1919,
President Wilson stated that nothing is more likely to disturb the peace of
the world than the treatment which might in certain circumstances be meted
out to minorities. Lord Acton emphasized that the most certain test by
which we judge whether a country is really free is the amount of security
enjoyed by minorities. It is also not disputed that in the field of
international law in respect of minorities it is an accepted view that the
minorities on account of their non dominance are in a vulnerable position
in the society and in addition to the guarantee of non-discrimination
available to all the citizens, require special and preferential treatment
in their own institutions. The Sub-Committee in its report to the
Commission on Human Rights reported thus:
"Protection of minorities is the protection of non-dominant groups, which,
while wishing in general for equality of treatment with the minority, wish
for a measure of differential treatment in order to preserve basic
characteristics which they possess and which distinguish them from the
majority of the population. The protection applied equally to individuals
belonging to such groups and wishing the same protection. It follows that
differential treatment of such groups or of individuals belonging to such
groups is justified when it is exercised in the interest of their
contentment and the welfare of the community as a whole."
(cited in St. Xavier’s College)
227. The aforesaid report was accepted by the Permanent Court of
International Justice in a case relating to minority school in Albania
which arose out of the fact that Albania signed a Declaration relating to
the position of minorities in the State. Article 4 of the Declaration
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 64 of 116
provided that all Albanian nationals shall be equal before the law and
shall enjoy the same civil and political rights without distinction as the
race, language or religion. Article 5 further provided that all Albanian
nationals who belong to racial, religious or linguistic minorities will
enjoy the same treatment and security in law and in fact as other Albanian
nationals. In particular they shall have an equal right to maintain, manage
and control at their own expense or to establish in the future charitable,
religious and social institutions, schools and other educational
establishments with the right to use their own language and to exercise
their religion freely therein. Subsequently, the Albanian Constitution was
amended and a provision was made for compulsory primary education for the
Albanian nationals in State schools and all private schools were to be
closed. The question arose before the Permanent Court of International
Justice as to whether Albanian Government was right to abolish the private
schools run by the Albanian minorities. The Court was of the view that the
object of Declaration was to ensure that nationals belonging to the racial,
religious or linguistic minorities shall be placed in every respect on a
footing of perfect equality with other nationals of the State. The second
was to ensure for the minority elements suitable means for the preservation
of their racial peculiarities, their traditions and their national
characteristics. These two requirements were indeed closely interlocked,
for there would be no true equality between a majority and a minority if
the latter were deprived of its own institutions and were consequently
compelled to renounce that which constitutes the very essence of its being
a minority. The Court was of the further view that "there must be equality
in fact as well as ostensible legal equality in the sense of the absence of
discrimination in the words of the law. Equality in law precludes
discrimination of any kind; whereas equality in fact may involve the
necessity of different treatment in order to attain a result which
establishes an equilibrium between different situations." (St. Xavier
Colleges case (per Khanna, Mathew, JJ.)
228. Article 27 of the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights
1966 (CCPR) guarantee minority rights in the following terms:
"In those States in which ethnic, religious or linguistic minorities exist
persons belonging to such minorities shall not be denied the right, in
community with the other members of their group, to enjoy their own culture
to profess and practice their own religions or to use their own language."
229. Prof. Francesco Capotorti in his celebrated study on the Rights of
Persons Belonging to Ethnic, Religious or Linguistic Minorities stated as
follows:
"Article 27 of the Covenant must, therefore, be placed in its proper
context. To enable the objectives of this article to be achieved, it is
essential that States should adopt legislative and administrative measures.
It is hard to imagine how the culture and language of a group can be
conserved without, for example, a special adaptation of the educational
system of the country. The right accorded to members of minorities would
quite obviously be purely theoretical unless adequate cultural institutions
were established. This applies equally in the linguistic field, and even
where the religion of a minority is concerned a purely passive attitude on
the part of the State would not answer the purposes of Article 27. However,
whatever the country, groups with sufficient resources to carry out tasks
of this magnitude are rare, if not non-existent. Only the effective
exercise of the rights set forth in Article 27 can guarantee observance of
the principle of the real, and not only formal, equality of persons
belonging to minority groups. The implementation of these rights calls for
active and sustained intervention by States. A passive attitude on the part
of the latter would render such rights inoperative."
230. The Human Rights Committee functioning under the Optional Protocol of
ICCPR in its General Comment adopted by the Committee on 06th April, 1994
stated thus:
"The Committee points out that Article 27 establishes and recognizes a
right, which is conferred on individuals belonging to minority groups and
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 65 of 116
which is distinct from, and additional to, all the other rights which, as
individuals in common with everyone else, they are already entitled to
enjoy under the Covenant."
231. From the aforesaid report it is clear that in certain circumstances
rights conferred to minority groups are distinct from and additional to,
all the other rights which as an individuals are entitled to enjoy under
the covenant. The political thinkers have recognised the importance of
minority rights as well as for ensuring such rights. According to them the
rights conferred on linguistic or religious minorities are not in the
nature of privilege or concession, but heir entitlement flows from the
doctrine of equality, which is the real de facto equality. Equality in law
precludes discrimination of any kind, whereas equality in fact may involve
the necessity of different treatment in order to attain a result which
establishes equilibrium between different situations. Where there is a
plurality in a society, the object of law should be not to split the
minority group which makes up the society, but to find out political social
and legal means of preventing them from falling apart and so destroying the
society of which they are members. The attempt should be made to assimilate
the minorities with majority. It is a matter of common knowledge that in
some of the democratic countries where minority rights were not protected,
those democracies acquired status of theocratic States.
232. In India, the framers of the Constitution of India with a view to
instill a sense of confidence and security in the mind of minority have
conferred rights to them under the Constitution. One of such rights is
embodied in Article 30 of the Constitution. Under Article 30 the minorities
either linguistic or religious have right to establish and administer
educational institutions of their choice. However, under the Constitution
every citizen is equal before law, either he may belong to minority group
or minority community. But right conferred on minority under Article 30(1)
would serve no purpose when they cannot admit students of their own
community in their own institutions. In order to make Article 30(1)
workable and meaningful, such rights must be interpreted in the manner in
which they serve the minorities as well as the mandate contained in Article
29(2). Thus, where minorities are found to have established and
administering their own educational institutions, the doctrine of the real
de facto equality has to be applied. The doctrine of the real de facto
equality envisages giving a preferential treatment to members of minorities
in the matter of admission in their own institutions. On application of
doctrine of the real de facto equality in such a situation not only Article
30(1) would be workable and meaningful, but it would also serve the mandate
contained in Article 29(2). Thus, while maintaining the rule of non-
discrimination envisaged by Article 29(2), the minorities should have also
right to give preference to the students of their own community in the
matter of admission in their own institution. Otherwise, there would be no
meaningful purpose of Article 30(1) in the Constitution. True, receipt of
State aid makes it obligatory for educational institution to keep the
institution open to non-minority students without discrimination on the
specified grounds. But, to hold that the receipt of State aid completely
disentitles the management of minority educational institutions from
admitting students of their community to any extent will be to denude the
essence of Article 30 of the Constitution. It is, therefore, necessary that
minority be given preferential rights to admit students of their own
community in their own institutions in a reasonable measure otherwise there
would be no meaningful purpose of Article 30 in the Constitution.
233. Article 337 of the Constitution provides that grants or government aid
has to be given to the Anglo-Indian Institution provided they admit 40% of
members from other community. Taking the clue from Article 337 and spirit
behind Article 30(1) it appears appropriate that minority educational
institutions be given preferential rights in the matter of admission of
children of their community in their own institutions while admitting
students of non-minorities which, advisedly, may be upto 50% based on inter
se merits of such students. However, it would be subject to assessment of
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 66 of 116
the actual requirement of the minorities the types of the institutions and
the course of education for which admission is being sought for and other
relevant factors.
234. Before concluding the matter, it is necessary to deal with few more
aspects which relate to the regulatory measures taken by the government
with regard to government aided minority institution. In that connection,
the State must see that regulatory measures of control of such institutions
should be minimum and there should not be interference in the internal or
day-to-day working of the management. However, the State would be justified
in enforcing the standard of education in such institutions. In case of
minority professional institutions, it can also be stipulated that passing
of common entrance test held by the State agency is necessary to seek
admission. It is for the reason that the products of such professional
institutions are not only going to serve the minorities but also to
majority community. So far as the redressal of grievances of staff and
teachers of minority institutions are concerned, a mechanism has to be
evolved. Past experience shows that setting up a Tribunal for particular
class of employees is neither expedient nor conducive to the interest of
such employee. In that view of the matter each District Judge which
includes the Addl. District Judge of the respective district be designated
as Tribunal for redressal of the grievances of the employee and staff of
such institutions.
235. Another question that arises in this connection as to on what grounds
the staff and teachers, if aggrieved, can challenge the arbitrary decisions
of the management. One of the learned senior counsel suggested that such
decisions be tested on the grounds available under the labour laws.
However, seeing the nature of the minority institutions the grounds
available under labour laws are too wide and it would be appropriate if
adverse decisions of the Management are tested on grounds of breach of
principles of natural justice and fair play or any regulation made in that
respect.
236. Subject to what have been stated above, I concur with the judgment of
Hon’ble the Chief Justice.
___________________________________________________________________________
Syed Shah Mohammed Quadri, J.
237. I have perused the majority judgment prepared by Hon’ble the Chief
Justice, the concurring opinion of my learned brother, Khare, J. and the
dissenting opinions given by our learned sister Ruma Pal, J. and learned
brother S.N. Variava, J.
238. Though the questions referred to and re-framed are eleven, the Bench
deemed it fit not to answer four of them. On the contentions advanced by
the learned counsel who argued these cases in regard to the remaining seven
questions, the learned Chief Justice has formulated the following five
issues which encompass the entire field:
1. IS THERE A FUNDAMENTAL RIGHT TO SET UP EDUCATIONAL INSTITUTIONS AND IF
SO, UNDER WHICH PROVISION?
2. DOES UNNIKRISHNAN’S CASE REQUIRE RE-CONSIDERATION?
3. IN CASE OF PRIVATE INSTITUTIONS (UNAIDED AND AIDED), CAN THERE BE
GOVERNMENT REGULATIONS AND, IF SO, TO WHAT EXTENT?
4. IN ORDER, TO DETERMINE THE EXISTENCE OF A RELIGIOUS OR LINGUISTIC
MINORITY IN RELATION TO ARTICLE 30, WHAT IS TO BE THE UNIT, THE STATE OR
THE COUNTRY AS A WHOLE?
5. TO WHAT EXTENT CAN THE RIGHTS OF AIDED PRIVATE MINORITY INSTITUTIONS TO
ADMINISTER BE REGULATED?
239. Before I advert to these issues, it would be appropriate to record
that there was unanimity among the learned counsel appearing for the
parties, institutions, States and the learned Solicitor General appearing
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 67 of 116
for the Union of India on two aspects; the first is that all the citizens
have the right to establish educational institutions under Article 19(1)(g)
and Article 26 of the Constitution and the second is that the judgment of
the Constitution Bench of this Court in Unnikrishnan J.P. and Ors., v.
State of Andhra Pradesh and Ors. requires re- consideration, though there
was some debate with regard to the aspects which require re-consideration.
1. IS THERE A FUNDAMENTAL RIGHT TO SET UP EDUCATIONAL INSTITUTIONS AND IF
SO, UNDER WHICH PROVISION?
240. On this issue I respectfully agree with the view expressed by Hon’ble
the Chief Justice speaking for the majority.
241. Part III of the Constitution which embodies fundamental rights does
not specify such a right vis-a-vis all citizens as such. However, we shall
refer to Articles 19, 26 and 30 having a bearing on this issue.
242. Article 19 of the Constitution, insofar as it is relevant for the
present discussion, is as under:
"19. Protection of certain rights regarding freedom of speech, etc. - (1)
All citizens shall have the right -
(a) to (f) xxx xxx xxx
(g) to practise any profession, or to carry on any occupation, trade or
business.
(2) to (5) xxx xxx xxx
(6) Nothing in Sub-clause (g) of the said clause shall affect the operation
of any existing law insofar as it imposes, or prevent the State from making
any law imposing, in the interests of the general public, reasonable
restrictions on the exercise of the right conferred by the said sub-clause,
and, in particular, nothing in the said sub-clause shall affect the
operation of any existing law insofar as it relates to, or prevent the
State from making any law relating to,--
(i) the professional or technical qualifications necessary for practising
any profession or carrying on any occupation, trade or business, or
(ii) the carrying on by the State, or by a Corporation owned or controlled
by the State, of any trade, business, industry or service, whether to the
exclusion, complete or partial, of citizens or otherwise."
243. Article 19 confers on all citizens rights specified in Sub-clauses (a)
to (g). The fundamental rights enshrined in Sub-clause (g) of Clause (1) of
Article 19 of the Constitution are to practise any profession, or to carry
on any occupation, trade or business. We are concerned here with the right
to establish educational institution to impart education at different
levels, primary, secondary, higher, technical, professional, etc. Education
is essentially a charitable object and imparting education is, in my view,
a kind of service to the community, therefore, it cannot be brought under
’trade or business’ nor can it fall under ’profession’. Nevertheless,
having regard to the width of the meaning of the terms ’occupation’
elucidated in the judgment of Hon’ble the Chief Justice, the service which
a citizen desires to render by establishing educational institutions can be
read in ’occupation’. This right, like other rights enumerated in Sub-
clause (g), is controlled by Clause (6) of Article 19. The mandate of
Clause (6) is that nothing is Sub-clause (g) shall affect the operation of
any existing law, insofar it imposes or prevent the State from making any
law imposing, in the interests of general public, reasonable restrictions
on the exercise of right conferred by the said sub-clause and, in
particular, nothing in the said sub-clause shall affect the operation of
any existing law insofar as it relates to or prevent the State from making
nay law relating to: (i) the professional or technical qualifications
necessary for practising any profession or carrying on any occupation,
trade or business; or (ii) the carrying on by the State, or by a
Corporation owned or controlled by the State, of any trade, business,
industry or service, whether to the exclusion, complete or partial, of
citizens or otherwise. Therefore, it may be concluded that the right of a
citizen to run educational institutions can be read into "occupation"
falling in Sub-clause (g) of Clause (1) of Article 19 which would be
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 68 of 116
subject to the discipline of Clause (6) thereof.
244. Every religious denomination or a section thereof is conferred the
right, inter alia, to establish and maintain institution for religious and
charitable purpose, incorporated in Clause (a) of Article 26, which reads
thus:
"26. Freedom to manage religious affairs - Subject to public order,
morality and health, every religious denomination or any section thereof
shall have the right--
(a) to establish and maintain institutions for religious and charitable
purposes;
(b) to (d) xxx xxx xxx"
245. The right under Clause (a) is a group right and is available to every
religious denomination or any section thereof, be it of majority or any
section thereof. It is evident from the opening words of Article 26 that
this right is subject to public order, morality and health.
246. The Constitution protects the cultural and educational rights of such
minorities as are specified in Articles 29 and 30.
247. Article 29 deals with the protection of interests of minorities. If
affords protection to minorities who have a distinct language, script or
culture of their own and declares that they shall have the right to
conserve the same provided they form a section of citizens residing in the
territory of India. Sub-clause (1) of Section 29 is in the following terms:
"29. Protection of interests of minorities - (1) Any section of the
citizens residing in the territory of India or any part thereof having a
distinct language, script or culture of its own shall have the right to
conserve the same."
248. We shall advert to Clause (2) of Article 29 separately;
249. Article 30 of the Constitution confers a special right on the
minorities to establish and administer educational institutions. For the
purposes of this Article, religious or linguistic minorities alone are
recognised for conferring rights under Article 30. Article 30 reads as
under:
"30. Right of minorities to establish and administer educational
institutions - (1) All minorities, whether based on religion or language,
shall have the right to establish and administer educational institutions
of their choice.
(1A) In making any law providing for the compulsory acquisition of any
property of an educational institution established and administered by a
minority, referred to in Clause (1), the State shall ensure that the amount
fixed by or determined under such law for the acquisition of such property
is such as would not restrict or abrogate the right guaranteed under that
clause.
(2) The State shall not, in granting aid to educational institutions,
discriminate against any educational institution on the ground that it is
under the management of a minority, whether based on religion or language."
250. Clause (1) of Article 30 provides that all minorities, whether based
on religion on language, shall have the right (i) to establish and (ii)
administer educational institutions of their choice. The amplitude of the
right is couched in very wide language. It is also a group right but any
individual belonging to minorities, linguistic or religious, may exercise
this right for the benefit of his own group. It is significant to note that
the right conferred under Article 30 is not subjected to any limitations.
The Article speaks of "their choice". The right to establish and administer
educational institutions is of the choice of the minorities. The expression
"institutions of their choice" means institutions for the benefit of the
minorities; the word ’choice’ encompasses both of the students as well as
of the type of education to be imparted in such educational institutions.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 69 of 116
251. It has been settled by a catena of decisions of this Court [In Re The
Kerala Education Bill, 1957 [1959 SCR 995], Rev. Sidhajbhai Sabhjai and
Ors. v. State of Bombay and Anr., The Ahmedabad St. Xavier’s College
Society and Anr. Etc. v. State of Gujarat and Anr. and St. Stephen’s
College v. University of Delhi that Article 30 of the Constitution
conferred special rights on the minorities (linguistic or religious). The
word ’minority’ is not defined in the Constitution but literally it means
’a non-dominant’ group. It is a relative term and is referred to, to
represent the smaller of two members, sections or group called ’majority’.
In that sense, there may be political minority, religious minority,
linguistic minority, etc.
252. The other clauses of this Article will be discussed separately.
253. With these few comments, I am in respectful agreement with the
majority judgment on issue No. 1.
2. DOES UNNIKRISHNAN’S CASE REQUIRE RE-CONSIDERATION?
3. IN CASE OF PRIVATE INSTITUTION (UNAIDED AND AIDED) CAN THERE BE
GOVERNMENT REGULATIONS AND, IS SO, TO WHAT EXTENT?
4. IN ORDER TO DETERMINE THE EXISTENCE OF A RELIGIOUS OR LINGUISTIC
MINORITY IN RELATION TO ARTICLE 30, WHAT IS TO BE THE UNIT, THE STATE OR
THE COUNTRY AS A WHOLE?
On these issues, I respectfully agree with the reasoning and conclusion of
the majority.
5. TO WHAT EXTENT CAN THE RIGHTS OF AIDED PRIVATE MINORITY INSTITUTIONS TO
ADMINISTER BE REGULATED?
254. In regard to this issue and particularly on the interpretation of
Article 29(2) vis-a-vis, clauses (1) and (2) of Article 30 and the
conclusion recorded by the majority, I have some reservations. I could not
persuade myself to agree with the majority judgment as well as the opinions
of my learned brethren Khare, J. and more so with the dissenting opinion of
Variava, J. with which Ashok Bhan, J. agreed. On this aspect, I agree with
the reasoning and conclusion of our learned sister Ruma Pal, J. I would
give my reasons for this conclusion later.
255. In the result I am in respectful agreement with the answer recorded in
the majority judgment on question Nos. 1, 2, 3(a), 3(b) and 4 except to the
extent of reasoning and interpretation of Articles 29(2) and 30(1) on which
the answer is based. I agree, with respect, with answers to questions 3(a),
5(c), 6(a), 6(b) and 7. In regard to question No. 8, reconsideration of the
judgment of the Constitution Bench of this Court in St. Stephen’s College
(supra) which relates to aided minority institutions, I agree with the
answer recorded in the majority judgment, except to the extent of interplay
between Article 29(2) and 30(1) and giving to the authorities power to
prescribe a percentage having regard to the type of institution and
educational needs of minorities. I agree also with the answer to question
No. 9.
256. With regard to answer to question No. 5(b) and the common answer to
question Nos. 10 and 11, in the light of the comments made above, I would
answer that all the citizens have a right to establish and administer
educational institutions under Articles 19(1)(g) and 26. The minorities
have an additional right to establish and administer educational
institution ’of their choice’ under Article 30(1). The extent of these
rights are, therefore, different. A comparison of Articles 18, 26 and 30
would show that whereas the educational institutions established and run by
the citizens under Article 19(1)(g) and Article 26(a) are subject to the
discipline of Articles 19(6) and 26 there are no such limitations in
Article 30 of the Constitution, so in that the right conferred thereunder
is absolute. However, the educational institutions established by the
minorities under Article 30(1) will be subject only to the regulatory
measures which should be consistent with Article 30(1) will be subject only
to the regulatory measures which should be consistents with Article 30(1)
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 70 of 116
of the Constitution. My answer to question 5(b) is that the right of the
minority institutions to admit students of the minority, in any, would not
be affected in any way by receipt of State and, I intend to dilate on this
aspect of the matter in my separate reasoned opinion later. It is
sufficient to state at this stage that subject to this., I agree with the
common answer to question Nos. 10 and 11.
___________________________________________________________________________
Ruma Pal, J.
257. I have had the privilege of reading the opinion of Hon’ble the Chief
Justice. Although I am in broad agreement with most of the conclusions
arrived at in the judgment, I have to record my respectful dissent with the
answer to Question 1 and Question 8 in so far as it holds that Article
29(2) is applicable to Article 30(1). I consequently differ with the
conclusions as stated in answer to Questions 4, 5(b) and 11 to the extent
mentioned in this opinion.
258. Re: Question 1
What is the meaning and content of the expression ’minorities" in Article
30 of the Constitution of India?
Article 30 affords protection to minorities in respect of limited rights,
namely, the setting up and administration of an educational institution.
The question of protection raises three questions : (1) protection to whom?
(2) against whom? and (3) against what? The word minority means
"numerically less". The question then is numerically less in relation to
the country or the State or some other political or geographical boundary?
259. The protection under Article 30 is against any measure, legislative or
otherwise, which infringes the right’s granted under that article. The
right is not claimed in a vacuum -- it is claimed against a particular
legislative or executive measure and the question of minority status must
be judged in relation to the offending piece of legislation or executive
order. If the source of the infringing action is the State, then the
protection must be given against the State and the status of the individual
or group claiming the protection must be determined with reference to the
territorial limits of the State. If however the protection is limited to
State action, it will leave the group which is otherwise a majority for the
purpose of State legislation, vulnerable to Union legislation which
operates on a national basis. When the entire nation is sought to be
affected, surely the question of minority status must be determined with
reference to the country as a whole.
260. In Re: Kerala Education Bill, 1957 1959 SCR 995, p.1047, the
contention of the State of Kerala was that in order to constitute a
minority for the purposes of Articles 29(1) and 30(1), persons must be
numerically in the minority in the particular area or locality in which
educational institution is or is intended to be constituted. The argument
was negatived as being held inherently fallacious (p.1049) and also
contrary to the language of Article 350A. However, the Court expressly
refrained from finally opining as to whether the existence of a minority
community should in circumstances and for the purposes of law of that State
be determined on the basis of the population of the whole State or whether
it should be determined on the State basis only when the validity of a law
extending to the whole State is in question or whether it should be
determined on the basis of the population of a particular locality when the
law under attack applies only to that locality. In other words the issue
was - should the minority status be determined with reference to the source
of legislation viz., the State legislature or with reference to the extent
of the law’s application. Since in that case the Bill in question was
admittedly a piece of State legislation and also extended to the whole of
the State of Kerala it was held that "minority must be determined by
reference to the entire population of that State." (p.1050)
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 71 of 116
261. In the subsequent decision in DAV College v. State of Punjab (I) 1971
SCR (Supp) 688, 697, this Court opted for the first principle namely that
the position of minorities should be determined in relation to the source
of the legislation in question and it was clearly said:
"Though there was a faint attempt to canvas the position that religious or
linguistic minorities should be minorities in relation to the entire
population of the country in our view they are to be determined only in
relation to the particular legislation which is sought to be impugned,
namely that if it is the State legislature these minorities have to be
determined in relation to the population of the State."
262. In D.A.V. College v. State of Punjab (II), 1971 SCR (Supp) 677,
Punjabi had been sought to be enforced as the sole medium of instruction
and for examinations on the ground that it was the national policy of the
Government of India to energetically develop Indian languages and
literature. The College in question used Hindi as the medium of instruction
and Devnagri as the script. Apart from holding that the State Legislature
was legislatively incompetent to make Punjabi the sole medium of
instruction, the Court reaffirmed the fact that the College although run by
the Hindu community which represents the national majority, in Punjab it
was a religious minority with a distinct script and therefore the State
could not compel the petitioner-College to teach in Punjabi or take
examinations in that language with Gurmukhi script.
263. But assuming that Parliament had itself prescribed Hindi as the
compulsory medium of instruction in all educational institutions throughout
the length and breadth of the country. If a minority’s status is to be
determined only with respect to the territorial limits of a State, non-
Hindi speaking persons who are in a majority in their own State but in a
minority in relation to the rest of the country, would not be able to
impugn the legislation on the ground that it interferes with their right to
preserve a distinct language and script. On the other hand a particular
institution run by members of the same group in a different State would be
able to challenge the same legislation and claim protection in respect of
the same language and culture.
264. Apart from this incongruity, such an interpretation would be contrary
to Article 29(1) which contains within itself an indication of the ’unit’
as far as minorities are concerned when it says that any section of the
citizens residing in the territory of India or any part thereof having a
distinct language, script or culture of its own shall have the right to
conserve the same. Merely because persons having a distinct language,
script or culture are resident within the political and geographical limits
of a State within which they may be in a majority, would not take them out
of the phrase "section of citizens residing in the territory of India". It
is a legally fortuitous circumstances that states have been created along
linguistic lines after the framing of the Constitution.
265. In my opinion, therefore, the question whether a group is a minority
or not must be determined in relation to the source and territorial
application of the particular legislation against which protection is
claimed and I would answer question 1 accordingly.
266. Re: Question 8
Whether the ratio laid down by this Court in the St. Stephen’s case (St.
Stephen’s College v. University of Delhi is correct ? If no, what order?
267. In St. Stephen’s College, the Court decided (a) that the minorities
right to admit students under Article 30(1) had to be balanced with the
rights conferred under Article 29(2). Therefore the State could regulate
the admission of students of the minority institutions so that not more
than 50% of the available seats were filled in by the children of the
minority community and (b) the minority institution could evolve its own
procedure for selecting students for admission in the institutions. There
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 72 of 116
can no be quarrel with the decision of the court on the second issue.
However, as far as the first principle is concerned, in my view the
decision is erroneous and does not correctly state the law.
268. Article 30(1) of the Constitution provides that "All minorities,
whether based on religion or language, shall have the right to establish
and administer educational institutions of their choice". Article 29(2) on
the other hand says that "no citizen shall be denied admission into any
education institution, maintained by the State or receiving aid out of
State funds on grounds only of religion, race, caste, language or any of
them."
269. Basically, the question is whether Article 30(1) is subject to Article
29(2) or is Article 29(2) subject to Article 30(1). If Article 30(1) does
not confer the right to admit students then of course there is no question
of conflict with Article 29(2) which covers the field of admission into
"any education institution". The question, therefore, assumes that the
right granted to minorities under Article 30(1) involves the right to admit
students. Is this assumption valid? The other assumption on which the
question proceeds is that minority institutions not receiving aid are
outside the arena of this apparent conflict. Therefore the issue should be
more appropriately framed as:- does the receipt of State aid and consequent
admission of non-minority students affect the rights of minorities to
establish and administer educational institution of their choice? I have
sought to answer the question on an interpretation of the provisions of the
Constitution so that no provision is rendered nugatory or redundant Sri
Venkataramana Devaru and Ors. v. The State of Mysore and Ors. 1958 SCR 895,
918; Pandit M.S.M. Sharma v. Shri Sri Krishna Sinha; 1959 Suppl 1 SCR 806,;
on an interpretation of the provisions in the context of the objects which
were sought to be achieved by the framers of the Constitution; and, finally
on a consideration of how this Court has construed these provisions in the
past.
270. Both Articles 29 and 30 are in Part III of the Constitution which
deals with ’Fundamental Rights’. The fundamental rights have been grouped
and placed under separate headings. For the present purposes, it is
necessary to consider the second, fourth and fifth groups. The other
Articles in the other groups are not relevant. The second group consists of
Articles 14 to 18 which have been clubbed under ’Right to Equality’.
Articles 25 to 28 are placed under the fourth heading ’Right to Freedom of
Religion’. Articles 29 and 30 fall within the fifth heading ’Cultural and
Educational Rights’.
271. The rights guaranteed under the several parts of Part III of the
Constitution overlap and provide different facets of the objects sought to
be achieved by the Constitution. These objectives have been held to contain
the basic structure of the Constitution which cannot be amended in exercise
of the powers under Article 368 of the Constitution Keshvananda Bharti v.
State of Kerala. Amongst these objectives are those of Equality and
Secularism. According to those who have argued in favour of a construction
by which Article 29(2) prevails order Article 30, Article 29(2) ensures the
equal right to education to all citizens, whereas if Article 30 is given
predominance it would not be in keeping with the achievement of this
equality and would perpetuate differences on the basis of language and more
importantly, religion, which would be contrary to the secular character of
the Constitution. Indeed the decision in St. Stephens in holding that
Article 29(2) applies to Article 30(1) appears to have proceeded on similar
considerations. Thus it was said that unless Article 29(2) applied to
Article 30(1) it may lead to "religious bigotry"; that it would be
"inconsistent with the central concept of secularism" and "equality
embedded in the Constitution" and that an "educational institution
irrespective of community to which it belongs is a melting pot in our
national life". Although Article 30(1) is not limited to religious
minorities, having regard to the tenor of the arguments and the reasoning
in St. Stephens in support of the first principle, I propose to consider
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 73 of 116
the argument on ’Secularism" first.
272. Article 30 and Secularism
The word ’secular’ is commonly understood in contradiction to the word
’religious’. The political philosophy of a secular Government has been
developed in the west in the historical context of the pre-eminence of the
established church and the exercise of power by it over society and its
institutions. With the burgeoning presence of diverse religious groups and
the growth of liberal and democratic ideas, religious intolerance and the
attendant violence and persecution of "non-believers" was replaced by a
growing awareness of the right of the individual to profession of faith, or
non-profession of any faith. The democratic State gradually replaced and
marginalised the influence of the church. But the meaning of the word
’secular State’ in its political context can and has assumed different
meanings in different countries, depending broadly on historical and social
circumstances, the political philosophy and the felt needs of a particular
country. In one country, secularism may mean an actively negative attitude
to all religions and religious institutions; in another it may mean a
strict "wall of separation" between the State and religion and religious
institutions. In India the State is secular in that there is no official
religion, India is not a theocratic State. However the Constitution does
envisage the involvement of the State in matters associated with religion
and religious institutions, and even indeed with the practice, profession
and propagation of religion in its most limited and distilled meaning.
273. Although the idea of secularism may have been borrowed in the Indian
Constitution from the west. It has adopted its own unique brand of
secularism based on its particular history and exigencies which are far
removed in many ways from secularism as it is defined and followed in
European countries, the United States of America and Australia.
274. The First Amendment to the American Constitution is as follows:
"Congress shall make no law respecting an establishment of
religion, or prohibiting the free exercise thereof."
275. In the words of Jefferson, the clause against establishment of
religion by law was intended to erect ’a wall of separation between Church
and State’. ’Reynolds v. United States’, (1878) 98 U S 145 at p.164.
276. The Australian Constitution has adopted the First Amendment in Section
116 which is based on that Amendment. It reads: "The Commonwealth shall not
make any laws for establishing any religion, or for imposing any religious
observance, or for prohibiting the free exercise of any religion, and no
religious test shall be required as a qualification for any office or
public trust under the Commonwealth."Kidangazhi Manakkal Narayanan
Nambudiripad v. State of Madras.
277. Under the Indian Constitution there is no such "wall of separation"
between the State and religious institutions. Article 16(5) recognises the
validity of laws relating to management of religious and denominational
institutions. Article 28(2) contemplates the State itself managing
educational institutions wherein religious instructions are to be imparted.
And among the subjects over which both the Union and the States have
legislative competence as set out in List No. III of the Seventh Schedule
to the Constitution Entry No. 28 are:
"Charitable and charitable institutions, charitable and religious
endowments and religious institutions".
278. Although like other secular Governments, the Indian Constitution in
Article 25(1) provides for freedom of conscience and the individual’s right
freely to profess, practice and propagate religion, the right is expressly
subject to public order, morality and health and to the other provisions in
Part III of the Constitution. The involvement of the State with even the
individual’s right under Article 25(1) is exemplified by Article 25(2) by
which the State is empowered to make any law.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 74 of 116
"a) regulating or restricting any economic, financial, political or other
secular activity which may be associated with religious practice;
(b) providing for social welfare and reform or the throwing open of Hindu
religious institutions of a public character to all classes and sections of
Hindus.
279. As a result the courts have upheld laws which may regulate or restrict
matters associated with religious practices if such practice does not form
an integral part of the particular religion Ramanuja v. State of Tamil Nadu
Quareshi v. State of Bihar 1959 SCR 629.
280. Freedom of religious groups or collective religious rights are
provided for under Article 26 which says that:
"Subject to public order, morality and health, every religious denomination
or any section thereof shall have the right-
(a) to establish and maintain institutions for religious and charitable
purposes.
(b) To manage and acquire movable and immovable property; and
(c) To own and acquire movable and immovable property; and
(d) To administer such property in accordance with law.
281. The phrase "matters of religion" has been strictly construed so that
matters not falling strictly within that phrase may be subject to control
and regulation by the State. The phrase ’subject to public order, morality
and health’ and "in accordance with law" also envisages extensive State
control over religious institutions. Article 26(a) allows all persons of
any religious denomination to set up an institution for a charitable
purpose, and undisputedly the advancement of education is a charitable
purpose. Further, the right to practise, profess and propagate religion
under Article 25 if read with Article 26(a) would allow all citizens to
exercise such rights through an educational institution. These rights are
not limited to minorities and are available to ’all persons’. Therefore,
the Constitution does not consider the setting up of educational
institutions by religious denominations or sects to impart the theology of
that particular denomination as anti-secular. Having regard to the
structure of the Constitution and its approach to ’Secularism’, the
observation in St. Stephens noted earlier is clearly not in keeping with
’Secularism’ as provided under the Indian Constitution. The Constitution as
it stands does not proceed on the ’melting pot’ theory. The Indian
Constitution, rather represents a ’salad bowl’ where there is homogeneity
without an obliteration of identity.
282. The ostensible separation of religion and the State in the field of
the States revenue provided by Article 27 (which prohibits compulsion of an
individual to pay any taxes which are specifically appropriated for the
expenses for promoting or maintaining any particular religious or religious
denomination) does not, however, in terms prevent the State from making
payment out of the proceeds of taxes generally collected towards the
promotion or maintenance of any particular religious or religious
denomination. Indeed, Article 290(A) of the Constitution provides for
annual payment to certain Devaswom funds in the following terms. " A sum of
forty-six lakhs and fifty thousand rupees shall be charged on, and paid out
of the Consolidated Fund of the State of Kerala every year to the
Travancore Devaswom fund; and a sum of thirteen lakhs and fifty thousand
rupees shall be charged on, and paid out of the Consolidated Fund of the
State of Tamil Nadu every year to the Devaswom Fund established in that
State for the maintenance of Hindu temples and shrines in the territories
transferred to that State on the 1st day of November, 1956, from the State
of Travancore Cochin." This may be compared with the decision of the U.S.
Supreme Court in Everson v. Board of Education (330 IUS 1) where it was
held that the State could not reimburse transportation charges of children
attending a Roman Catholic School.
283. Article 28 in fact brings to the fore the nature of the word ’secular’
used in the preamble to the Constitution and indicates clearly that there
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 75 of 116
is no wall of separation between the State and religious institutions under
the Indian Constitution. No doubt Article 28(1) provides that if the
institution is an educational one and it is wholly maintained by the State
funds, religious instruction cannot be provided in such institution.
However, Article 28(1) does not forbid the setting up of an institution for
charitable purposes by any religious denomination nor does it prohibit the
running of such institution even though it may be wholly maintained by the
State. What it prohibits is the giving of religious instruction. Even, this
prohibition is not absolute. It is subject to the extent of Sub-Article (2)
of Article 28 which provides that if the educational institution has been
established under any endowment or trust which requires that religious
instruction shall be imparted in such institution, then despite the
prohibition in Article 28(1) and despite the fact that the education
institution is in fact administered by the State, religious instruction can
be imparted in such institution. Article 28(2) thus in no uncertain terms
envisages that an educational institution administered by the State and
wholly maintained by the State can impart religious instruction. It
recognises in Article 28(3) that there may be educational institutions
imparting religious instruction according to whichever faith and conducting
religious worship which can be recognised by the State and which can also
receive aid out of State funds.
284. Similarly, Article 28(3) provides that no individual attending any
educational institution which may have been recognised by the State or is
receiving State aid can be compelled to take part in any religious
instruction that may be imparted in such institution or to attend any
religious worship that may be conducted in such institution without such
person’s consent. Implicit in this prohibition is that acknowledgement that
the State can recognize and aid an educational institution giving religious
instruction or conducting religious worship. In the United States, on the
other hand it has been held that State maintained institutions cannot give
religious instruction even if such instruction is not compulsory. (See.
Tiiinois v. Board of Education 1947 (82) Law Ed. 649).
285. In the ultimate analysis the Indian Constitution does not unlike the
United States, subscribe to the people of non- interference of the State in
religious organisations buy it remains secular in that it strives to
respect all religions equally, the equality being understood in its
substantive sense as is discussed in the subsequent paragraphs.
286. Article 30(1) and Article 14
’Equality’ which has been referred to in the Preamble is provided for in a
group of Articles led by Article 14 of the Constitution which says that the
State shall not deny to any person equality before the law or the equal
protection of the laws within the territory of India. Although stated in
absolute terms Article 14 proceeds on the premise that such equality of
treatment is required to be given to persons who are equally circumstanced.
Implicit in the concept of equality is the concept that persons who are in
fact unequally circumentanced cannot be treated on par. The Constitution
has itself provided for such classification in providing for special or
group or class rights. Some of these are in Part III itself [Article 26,
Article 29(1) and Article 30(1)] Other such Articles conferring group
rights or making special provision for a particular class include Articles
336 and 337 where special provision has been made for the Anglo-Indian
Community. Further examples are to be found in Articles 122, 212 and other
Articles giving immunity from the ordinary process of the law to persons
holding certain offices. Again Articles 371 to 371(H) contain special
provisions for particular States.
287. The principles of non-discrimination which form another fact of
equality are provided for under the Constitution under Articles 15(1),
16(1) and 29(2). The first two articles are qualified by major exceptions
under Articles 15(3) and (4), 16 (3), (4), (4A) and Article 335 by which
the Constitution has empowered the Executive to enact legislation or
otherwise specially provide for certain classes of citizens. The
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 76 of 116
fundamental principle of equality is not compromised by these provisions as
they are made on a consideration that the person so ’favoured’ are unequals
to begin with whether socially, economically or politically. Furthermore,
the use of the word ’any person’ in Article 14 in the context of
legislation in general or executive action affecting group rights is
construed to mean persons who are similarly situated. The classification of
such persons for the purposes of testing the differential treatment must,
of course, be intelligible and reasonable the reasonableness being
determined with reference to the object for which the action is taken. This
is the law which has been settled by this Court in a series of decisions,
the principle having been enunciated as early as in 1950 in Chiranjit Lal
Chowdhury v. Union of India and Ors. 1950 SCR 869.
288. The equality, therefore, under Article 14 is not indiscriminate.
Paradoxical
as it may seem, the concept of equality permits rational or discriminating
discrimination. Conferment of special benefits or protection or rights to a
particular group of citizens for rational reasons is envisaged under
Article 14 and is implicit in the concept of equality. There is no
abridgment of the content of Article 14 thereby-- but an exposition and
practical application of such content.
289. The distinction between classes created by Parliament and classes
provided for in the Constitution itself, is that the classification under
the first may be subjected to judicial review and tested against the
touchstone of the Constitution. But the classes originally created by the
Constitution itself are not so subject as opposed to constitutional
amendments. See Keshavananda Bharati v. State of Kerala AIR 1973 1461
290. On a plain reading of the provisions of the Article, all minorities
based on religion or language, shall have the right to (1) establish and
(2) administer educational institutions of their choice. The emphasized
words unambiguously and in mandatory terms grant the right to all
minorities to establish and administer educational institutions. I would
have thought that it is self evident and in any event, well settled by a
series of decisions of this Court that Article 30(1) creates a special
class in the field of educational institutions -- a class which is entitled
to special protection in the matters of setting up and administering
educational institutions of their choice. This has been affirmed in the
decisions of this Court where the right has been variously described as "a
sacred obligation" In re Kerala Education Bill, 1957 1959 SCR 995, 1070,
"am absolute right" Rev. Sidhajbhai Sabhai v. State of Bombay, "a special
right" Rev Father W. Proost and Ors. v. State of Bihar 1969 (2) SCR 173,
192, "a guaranteed right" State of Kerala v. Very Rev. Mother Provincial
1971 (1) SCR 734, 740, "the conscience of the nation" St. Xaviers College
v. Gujarat, "a befitting pledge" ibid 223, " a special right" ibid 224 and
an "article of faith" Lily Kurain v. Lewi.
291. The question then is -- does this special right in an admitted
linguistic or religious minority to establish and administer an educational
institution encompass the right to admit students belonging to that
particular community.
292. Before considering the earlier decision on this, a semantic analysis
of the word used in Article 30(1) of indicates that the right to admit
students is an intrinsic part of Article 30(1).
293. First -- Article 30(1) speaks of the right to set up an educational
institution. An educational institution is not a structure of bricks and
mortar. It is the activity which is carried on in the structure which gives
it its character as an educational institution. An educational institution
denotes the process or activity of education not only involving the
educators but also those receiving education. It follows that the right to
set up an educational institution necessarily includes not only the
selection of teachers or educators but also the admission of students.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 77 of 116
294. Second -- Article 30(1) speaks of the right to "administer" an
educational
institution. If the administration of an educational institution includes
and means its organisation then the organisation cannot be limited to the
infrastructure for the purposes of education and exclude the persons for
whom the infrastructure is set up, namely, the students. The right to admit
students is, therefore, part of the right to administer an educational
institution.
295. Third, - the benefit which has been guaranteed under Article 30 is a
protection of benefit guaranteed to all members of the minority as a whole.
What is protected is the community right which includes the right of
children of the minority community to receive education and the right of
parents to have their children educated in such institution. The content of
the right lies not in merely managing an educational institution but doing
so for the benefit of the community. Benefit can only lie in the education
received. It would be meaningless to give the minorities the right to
establish and set up an organisation for giving education as an end in
itself, and deny them the benefit of the education. This would render the
right a mere form without any content. The benefit to the community and the
purpose of the grant of the right is in the actual education of the members
of the community.
296. Finally, - the words ’of their choice’ is not qualified by any words
of limitation and would include the right to admit students of the
minority’s choice. Since the primary purpose of Article 30(1) is to give
the benefit to the members of the minority community in question that
’choice’ cannot be exercised in a manner that deprives that community of
the benefit. Therefore, the choice must be directed towards fulfilling the
needs of the community . How that need is met, whether by general education
or otherwise, is for the community to determine.
297. The interpretation is also in keeping with what this Court has
consistently held. In state of Bombay v. Bombay Education Society, the
Court said:
"..... surely then there must be implicit in such fundamental right the
right to impart instruction in their own institutions to the children of
their own Community in their own language. To hold otherwise will be to
deprive Article 29(1) and Article 30(1) of the greater part of their
contents."
298. In Kerala Education Bill, 1957, it was said:
"The minorities, quite understandably, regard it as essential that the
education of their children should be in accordance with the teachings of
their religion and they hold, quite honestly, that such an education cannot
be obtained in ordinary schools designed for all the members of the public
but can only be secured in schools conducted under the influence and
guidance of people well versed in the tenets of their religion and in the
traditions of their culture. The minorities evidently desire that education
should be imparted to the children of their community in an atmosphere
congenial to the growth of their culture. Our Constitution makers
recognised the validity of their claim and to allay their fears conferred
on them the fundamental rights referred to above."
299. The issue of admission to minority institutions under Article 30 arose
in the decision of Rev. Sidhajbhai Sabhai where the State’s order reserving
80 per cent of the available seats in a minority Institution for admission
of persons nominated by the Government under threat of derecognition if the
reservation was not complied with, was struck down as being violative of
Article 30(1). It was said that although the right of the minority may be
regulated to secure the proper functioning of the institution, the
regulations must be in the interest of institution and not ’in the interest
of outsiders’. The view was reiterated in St. Xaviers College when it was
said:
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 78 of 116
-The real reason embodied in Article 30(1) of the Constitution is the
conscience of the nation that the minorities religious as well as
linguistic, are not prohibited from establishing and administering
educational institutions of their choice for the purpose of giving their
children the best general education to make them complete men and women of
the country."
300. In St. Stephen’s College, the Court recognised that:
"The right to select students for admission is a part of administration. It
is indeed an important facet of administration. This power also could be
regulated but the regulation must be reasonable just like any other
regulation. It should be conducive to the welfare of the minority
institution or for the betterment of those who resort to it."
301. However, in a statement which is diametrically opposed to the earlier
decisions of this Court, it was held:
"The choice of institution provided in Article 30(1) does not mean that the
minorities could establish educational institution for the benefit of their
own community people. Indeed they cannot. It was pointed out in Re, Kerala
Educational Bill that the minorities cannot establish educational
institution only for the benefit of their community. If such was the aim,
Article 30(1) would have been differently worded and it would have
contained the words "for their own community". In the absence of such words
it is legally impermissible to construe the article as conferring the right
on the minorities to establish educational institution for their own
benefit...." (P. 607)
302. This conclusion, in my respectful view, is based on a misreading of
the decision of this Court in Kerala Educational Bill. In that case, there
was no question of the non-minority students being given admission
overlooking the needs of the minority community. The Court was not called
upon to consider the question. The underlying assumption in that case was
that the only obstacle to the non-minority student getting admission into
the minority institution was the State’s order to that effect and not the
"choice" of the minority institution itself and a minority institution may
choose to admit students not belonging to the community without shedding
its minority character, provided the choice was limited to a ’sprinkling’.
In fact the learned Judges in St. Stephens case have themselves in a
subsequent portion of the judgment (p.611) taken a somewhat contradictory
stand to the view quoted earlier when they said:
".....the minorities have the right to admit their own candidates to
maintain the minority character of their institutions. That is a necessary
concomitant right which flows from the right to establish and administer
educational institution in Article 30(1). There is also a related right to
the parents in the minority communities. The parents are entitled to have
their children educated in institutions having an atmosphere congenial to
their own religion."
303. The conclusion, therefore, is that the right to admission being an
essential part of the constitutional guarantee under Article 30(1) a
curtailment of that fundamental right in so far as it affect benefit of the
minority community would amount to the an infringement of that guarantee.
304. An Institution set up by minorities for educating members of the
minority community does not cease to be a minority institution merely
because it takes aid. There is nothing in Article 30(1) which allows the
drawing of a distinction in the exercise of the right under that Article
between needy minorities and affluent ones. Article 30(2) of the
Constitution reinforces this when it says, "The State shall not, in
granting aid to educational institutions, discriminate against any
educational institution on the ground that it is under the management of a
minority, whether based on religion or language". This assumes that even
after the grant of aid by the State to an educational institution under the
management of the minority, the educational institution continues to be a
minority educational institution. According to some, Article 30(2) merely
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 79 of 116
protects the minority’s right of management of the educational institution
and not the students who form part of such institution. Such a reading
would be contrary to Article 30(1) itself. The argument is based on the
construction of the word ’management’. ’Management’ may be defined as ’the
process of managing’ and is not limited to the people managing the
institution.Concise Oxford Dictionary (10th Edition) 864. In the context of
Article 30(1) and having regard to the content of the right, namely, the
education of the minority community, the word ’management’ in Article 30(2)
must be construed to mean the ’process and not the ’persons’ in management
’Aid’ by definition means to give support or to held or assist. It cannot
be that by giving ’aid’ one destroys those to whom ’aid’ is given. The
obvious purpose of Article 30(2) is to forbid the State from refusing aid
to a minority educational institution merely because it is being run as a
minority educational institution. Besides Article 30(2) is an additional
right conferred on minorities under Article 30(1). It cannot be construed
in a manner which is destructive of or as a limitation on Article 30(1). As
has been said earlier by this Court in Rev. Sidhabhai Sabhai, supra Clause
(2) of Article 30 is only another non-discriminatory clause in the
Constitution. It is a right in addition to the rights under Article 30(1)
and does not operate to derogate from the provisions in Clause (1). When in
decision after decision, this Court has held that aid in whatever form is
necessary for an educational institution to survive, it is a specious
argument to say that a minority institution can preserve its rights under
Article 30(1) by refusing aid.
305. I would, therefore, respectfully agree with the conclusion expressed
in the majority opinion that grant of aid under Article 30(2) cannot be
used as a lever
to take away the rights of the minorities under Article 30(1).
306. Articles 29(2) and 30(1)
Article 29(2) says that "No citizen shall be denied admission into any
educational institution maintained by the State or receiving aid out of
State funds on grounds only of religion, race, case, language or any of
them".
307. It is because Article 30(1) covers the right to admit students that
there is an apparent conflict between Article 29(2) and Article 30(1).
There are two ways of considering the relationship between Article 30(1)
and Article 29(2), the first in the context of Article 14, the second by an
interpretation of Article 29(2) itself.
308. Article 29(2) has not been expressed as a positive right. Nevertheless
in substance it confers a right on a person not to be denied admission into
an aided institution only on the basis of religion, race etc. The language
of Article 29(2) reflects the language used in other non-discriminatory
Articles in the Constitution namely, Clauses (1) and (2) of Article 15 and
Clauses (1) and (2) of Article 16. As already noted both the Articles
contain exceptions which permit laws being made which make special
provisions on the basis of sex, caste and race. Even in the absence of
Clauses (3) and (4) of Article 15 and Clauses (3), (4) and 4(A) of Article
16, Parliament could have made special provisions on the forbidden bases of
race, caste or sex, provided that the basis was not the only reason for
creating a separate class. There would have to be an additional rational
factor qualifying such basis to bring it within the concept of ’equality in
fact’ on the principle of ’rational classification’. For example when by
law a reservation is made in favour of a member of a backward class in the
matter of appointment, the reservation is no doubt made on the basis of
caste. It is also true that to the extent of the reservation other citizens
are discriminated against on one of the bases prohibited under Article
16(1). Nevertheless such legislation would be valid because the reservation
is not only on the basis of caste/race but because of the additional factor
of their backwardness. Clauses (3) and (4) of Article 15 like Clause 3, 4
and 4(A) of Article 16 merely make explicit what is otherwise implicit in
the concept of equality under Article 14.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 80 of 116
309. By the same token, Article 29(2) does not create an absolute right for
citizens to be admitted into any educational institution maintained by the
State or receiving aid out of State funds. It does not prohibit the denial
of admission on grounds other than religion, race, caste or language.
Therefore, reservation of admissions on the grounds of residence,
occupation of parents or other bases has been held to be a valid
classification which does not derogate from the principles of equality
under Article 14. [See: Kumari Chitra Ghosh v. Union of India : D.N.
Chanchala v. State of Mysore: 1971 SCR (Supp.) 608. Even in respect of the
"prohibited" bases, like the other non-discriminatory Articles, Article
29(2) is constitutionally subject to the principle of ’rational
classification’. If a person is denied admission on the basis of a
constitutional right, that is not a denial only on the basis of religion,
race etc. This is exemplified in Article 15(4) which provides for:
"Nothing in this article or in Clause (2) of Article 29 shall prevent the
State from making any special provision for the advancement of any socially
and educationally backward classes of citizens or for the Scheduled Castes
and the Tribes."
310. To the extent that legislation is enacted under Article 15(4) making
special
provision in respect of a particular caste, there is a denial of admission
to others who do not belong to the caste. Nevertheless, Article 15(4) does
not contradict the right under Article 29(2). This is because of the use of
the word ’only’ in Article 29(2). Article 15(4) is based on the rationale
that Schedule Castes and Tribes are not on par with other members of
society in the matter of education and, therefore, special provision is to
be made for them. It is not, therefore, only caste but this additional
factor which prevents clause 15(4) from conflicting with Article 29(2) and
Article 14.
311. Then again, under Article 337, grants are made available for the
benefit of the Anglo-Indian community in respect of education, provided
that any educational institution receiving such grant makes available at
least 40% of the annual admission for members of communities other than the
Anglo-Indian community. Hence 60% of the admission to an aided Anglo-Indian
School is constitutionally reservable for members of the Anglo-Indian
community. To the extent of such reservation, there is necessarily a denial
of admission to non-Anglo Indians on the basis of race.
312. Similarly, the Constitution has also carved out a further exception to
Article 29(2) in the form of Article 30(1) by recognising the rights of
special classes in the form of minorities based on language or religion to
establish and administer educational institutions of their choice. The
right of the minorities under Article 30(1) does not operate as
discrimination against other citizens only on the ground of religion or
language. The reason for such classification is not only religion or
language per se but minorities based on religion and language. Although, it
is not necessary to justify a classification made by the Constitution, this
fact of ’minorityship’ is the obvious rationale for making a distinction,
the underlying assumption being that minorities by their very numbers are
in a politically disadvantaged situation and require special protection at
least in the field of education.
313. Articles 15(4), 337 and 30 are therefore facets of substantive
equality by making special provision for special classes on special
considerations.
314. Even on general principles of interpretation, it cannot be held that
Article 29(2) is absolute and in effect wipes out Article 30(1). Article
29(2) refers to ’ any educational institution’ -- the word "any" signifying
the generality of its application. Article 30(1) on the other hand refers
to ’educational institutions established and administered by minorities’.
Clearly, the right under Article 30(1) is the more particular right and on
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 81 of 116
the principle of ’ generalia speciaiibus non derogent, it must be held that
Article 29(2) does not override he educational institutions even if they
are aided under Article 30(1) Pandit M.S.M. Sharma v. Shri Sri Krishna
Sinha: 1959 Suppl. 1 SCR 806, 860, 1939 FCR 18.
315. Then again Article 29(2) appears under the heading ’Protection of
interests of minorities’. Whatever the historical reasons for the placement
of Article 29(2) under this head, it is clear that no general principles of
interpretation, the heading is at least a pointer or aid in construing the
meaning of Article 29(2). As Subba Rao, J said "if there is any doubt in
the interpretation of the words in the section, the heading certainly helps
us to resolve that doubt." Bhinka v. Charan Singh. Therefore, if two
interpretations of the words of Article 29(2) are possible, the one which
is in keeping with the heading of the Article must be preferred. It would
follow that Article 29(2) must be construed in a manner protective of
minority interests and not destructive of them.
316. When ’aid’ is sought for by the minority institution to run its
institution for the benefit of students belonging to that particular
community, the argument on the basis of Article 29(2) is that if such an
institution asks for aid it does so at the peril of depriving the very
persons for whom aid was asked for in the first place. Apart from this
anomalous result, if the taking of aid implies that the minority
institution will be forced to give up or waive its right under Article
30(1), then on the principle that it is not permissible to give up or waive
fundamental rights, such an interpretation is not possible. It has then
been urged that Article 29(2) applies to minority institutions under
Article 30(1) much in the same way that Article 28(1) and 28(3) do. The
argument proceeds on the assumption that an educational institution set up
under Article 30(1) is set up for the purposes and with the sole object of
giving religious instruction. The assumption is wrong. At the outset, it
may also be noted that Article 28(1) and (3) do not in terms apply to
linguistic minority educational institutions at all. Furthermore, the right
to set up an educational institution in which religious instruction is to
be imparted is a right which is derived from Article 26(a) which provides
that every religious denomination or any section thereof shall have the
right to establish and maintain institutions for religious and charitable
purposes, and not under Article 30(1). Educational institutions set up
under Article 26(a) are, therefore, subject to Clauses (1) and (3) of
Article 28. Article 30(1) is a right additional to Article 26(a). This
follows from the fact that it has been separately and expressly provided
for and there is nothing in the language of Article 30(1) making the right
thereunder subject to Articles 25 and 26. Unless it is so construed Article
30(1) would be rendered redundant St. Xaviers College, paras 7 to 12.
Therefore, what Article 30 does is to secure the minorities the additional
right to give general education. Although in a particular case a minority
educational institution may combine general education with religious
instruction that is done in exercise of the rights derivable from Article
26(a) and Article 30(1) and not under Article 30(1) alone. Clauses (1) and
(3) of Article 28, therefore, do not apply to Article 30(1). The argument
in support of reading Article 30(1) as being subject to Article 29(2) on
the analogy of Article 28(1) and 28(3) is, I would think, erroneous.
317. For the reasons already stated I have held the right to admit minority
students to a minority educational institutions is an intrinsic part of
Article 30(1). To say that Article 29(2) prevails over Article 30(1) would
be to infringe and to a large extent wipe out this right. There would be no
distinction between a minority educational institution and other
institutions and the rights under Article 30(1) would be rendered wholly
inoperational. It is no answer to say that the rights of unaided minority
institutions would remain untouched because Article 29(2) does not relate
to unaided institutions at all. Whereas if one reads Article 29(2) as
subject to Article 30(1) then effect can be given to both. And it is the
latter approach which is to be followed in the interpretation of
constitutional provisions. Sri Venkataramane Dev Aru v. State of Mysore,
1958 SCR 895, 918. In other words, as long as the minority educational
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 82 of 116
institution is being run for the benefit of and catering to the needs of
the members of that community under Article 30(1), Article 29(2) would not
apply. But once the minority educational institution travels beyond the
needs in the sense of requirements of its own community, at that stage it
is no longer exercising rights of admission guaranteed under Article 30(1).
To put it differently, when the right of admission is exercised not to meet
the need of the minorities, the rights of admission given under Article
30(1) is to that extent removed and the institution is bound to admit
students for the balance in keeping with the provisions of Article 29(2).
318. A simple illustration would make the position clear. ’Aid’ is given to
a minority institution. There are 100 seats available in that institution.
There are 150 eligible candidates according to the procedure evolved by the
institution. Of the 150, 60 candidates belong to that particular community
and 90 to other communities. The institution will be entitled, under
Article 30(1) to admit all 60 minority students first and then fill the
balance 40 seats from the other communities without discrimination in
keeping with Article 29(2).
319. I would, therefore, not subscribe to the view that Article 29(2)
operates to deprive aided minority institutions the right to admit members
of their community to educational institutions established and administered
by them either on any principle of interpretation or on any concept of
equality or secularism.
320. The next task is to consider whether this interpretation of Article
29(2) and 30(1) is discordant with the historical context in which these
Articles came to be included in the Constitution. Before referring to the
historical context, it is necessary to keep in mind that what is being
interpreted are constitutional provisions which "have a content and a
significance that vary from age to age".Cardozo: Nature of Judicial
Process, p.17. Of particular significance is the content of the concept of
equality which has been developed by a process of judicial interpretation
over the years as discussed earlier. It is also necessary to be kept in
mind that reports of the various Committees appointed by the Constituent
Assembly and speeches made in the Constituent Assembly and the record of
other proceedings of the Constituent Assembly are admissible, if at all,
merely as extrinsic aids to construction and do not as such bind the Court.
Ultimately it is for this Court to say what is meant by the words of the
Constitution.
321. The proponents of the argument that Article 29(2) over-rides Article
30(1) have referred to excerpts from the speeches made by members of
Constituent Assembly which have been quoted in support of their view. Apart
from the doubtfulness as to the admissibility of the speeches, K.P.
Verghese v. Income Tax Officer: Sanjeev Coke v. Bharat Coking Coal Ltd. and
PV Narasimha Rao, in my opinion, there is nothing in the speeches which
shows an intention on the part of the Constituent Assembly to abridge in
any way the special protection afforded to minorities under Article 30(1).
The intention indicated in the speeches relating to the framing of Article
29(2) appears to be an extension of the right of non-discrimination to
members of the non-minority in respect of State aided or State maintained
educational institutions. It is difficult to find in the speeches any
unambiguous statement which points to a determination on the part of the
Constituent Assembly to curtail the special rights of the minorities under
Article 30(1). Indeed if one scrutinises the broad historical context and
the sequence of events preceding the drafting of the Constitution it is
clear that one of the primary objectives of the Constitution was to
preserve, protect and guarantee the rights of the minorities unchanged by
any rule or regulation that may be enacted by Parliament or any State
legislature.
322. The history which preluded the independence of this country and the
framing of the Constitution highlights the political context in which the
Constitution was framed and the political content of the "special" rights
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 83 of 116
given to minorities. I do not intend to burden this judgment with a
detailed reference to the historical run-up to the Constitution as
ultimately adopted by the Constituent Assembly vis-a-vis the rights of the
minorities and the importance that was placed on enacting effective and
adequate constitutional provisions to safeguard their interests. This has
been adequately done by Sikri, C.J. in Keshavanand Bharati v. State of
Kerala, on the basis of which the learned Judge came to the conclusion
that the rights of the minorities under the Constitution formed part of the
basic structure of the Constitution and were un-amendable and inalienable.
323. I need only add that the rights of linguistic minorities assumed
special significance and support when, much after independence, the
imposition of a ’unifying language’ led not to unity but to an assertion of
differences. States were formed on linguistic bases showing the apparent
paradox that allowing for and protecting differences leads to unity and
integrity and enforced assimilation may lead to disaffection and unrest.
The recognition of the principle of "unity in diversity" has continued to
be the hall mark of the Constitution -- a concept which has been further
strengthened by affording further support to the protection of minorities
on linguistic bases in 1956 by way of Articles 350A and 350B and in 1978 by
introducing Clause (1-A) in Article 30 requiring "the State, that is to
say, Parliament in the case of a Central legislation or a State legislature
in the case of State legislation, in making a specific law to provide for
the compulsory acquisition of the property of minority educational
institutions, to ensure that the amount payable to the educational
institution for the acquisition of its property will not be such as will in
any manner impair the functioning of the educational institution". Society
of St. Joseph’s College v. Union of India. Any judicial interpretation of
the provisions of the Constitution whereby this constitutional diversity is
diminished would be contrary to this avowed intent and the political
considerations which underlie this intention.
324. The earlier decisions of this Court show that the issue of admission
to a minority educational institution almost invariably arose in the
context of the State claiming that a minority institution had to be
’purely’ one which was established and administered by members of the
minority community concerned, strictly for the members of the minority
community, with the object only of preserving of the minority religion,
language, script or culture. The contention on the part of the executive
then was that a minority institution could not avail of the protection of
Article 30(1) if there was any non-minority element either in the
establishment, administration, admission or subjects taught. It was in that
context that the Court in Kerala Education Bill held that a ’sprinkling of
outsiders’ being admitted into a minority institution did not result in the
minority institution shedding its character and ceasing to be a minority
institution.p.1052. It was also in that context that the Court in St.
Xaviers College (supra) came to the conclusion that a minority institution
based on religion and language had the right to establish and administer
educational institution for imparting general secular education and still
not lose its minority character. While the effort of the Executive was to
retain the ’purity’ of a minority institution and thereby to limit it. "the
principle which can be discerned in the various decisions of this Court is
that the catholic approach which led to the drafting of the provisions
relating to minority rights should not be set at naught by narrow judicial
interpretation".
325. The ’liberal, generous and sympathetic approach’ of this Court towards
the rights of the minorities has been somewhat reversed in the St. Stephens
case. Of course, this was the first decision of this Court which squarely
dealt with the inter-relationship of Article 29(2) and Article 30(1). None
of the earlier cited decisions did.
326. The decision of this Court in Champakam Dorairajan v. State of Madras,
1951 SCR 525 cannot be construed as an authority for the proposition that
Article 29(2) overrides the constitutional right guaranteed to the
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 84 of 116
minorities under Article 30(1), as Article 30(1) was not at all mentioned
in the entire course of the judgment. Similarly, the Court in State of
Bombay v. Bombay Education Society, 1955 SCR 568 was not called upon to
consider a situation of conflict between Article 30(1) and 29(2). The
Bombay Education Society, was in fact directly concerned with Article 337
and an Anglo-Indian educational institution. In that background, when it
was suggested that Article 29(2) was intended to benefit minorities only,
the Court negatived the submission as it would amount to a ’double
protection’, "double" because an Anglo-Indian citizen would then have not
only the protection of Article 337 by way of a 60% reservation but also the
benefit of Article 29(2). It was not held by the Court that Article 29(2)
would override Article 337.
327. There is thus no question of striking a balance between Article 29(2)
and 30(1) as if they were two competing rights. Where once the Court has
held:
"Equality of opportunity for unequals can only mean aggravation of
inequality. Equality of opportunity admits discrimination with reason and
prohibits discrimination without reason. Discrimination with reasons means
rational classification for differential treatment having nexus to the
constitutional permissible objects."
and where Article 29(2) is nothing more than a principle of equality, and
when "the whole object of conferring the right on minorities under Article
30 is to ensure that there will be equality between the majority and the
minority, if the minorities do not have such special protection they will
be denied equality", it must follow that Article 29(2) is subject to the
constitutional classification of minorities under Article 30(1).
328. Finally, there appears be an inherent contradiction in the statement
of the Court in St. Stephens that:
"the minority aided educational institutions are entitled to prefer their
community candidates to maintain the minority character of the institutions
subject of course to conformity with the University standard. The State may
regulate the intake in this category with due regard to the need of the
community in the area which the institution is intended to serve. But in no
case such intake shall exceed 50 per cent of the annual admission. The
minority institutions shall make available at least 50 per cent of the
annual admission to members of communities other than the minority
community. The admission of other community candidates shall be done purely
on the basis of merit." (p.614)
329. I agree with the view as expressed by the Learned Chief Justice that
there is no question of fixing a percentage when the need may be variable.
I would only add that in fixing a percentage, the Court in St. Stephens in
fact "reserved" 50% of available seats in a minority institution for the
general category ostensible under Article 29(2). Article 29(2) pertains to
the right of an individual and is not a class right. It would therefore
apply when an individual is denied admission into any educational
institution maintained by the State or receiving aid from the State funds,
solely on the basis of the ground of religion, race, caste, language or any
of them. It does not operate to create a class interest or right in the
sense that any educational institution has to set apart for non-minorities
as a class and without reference to any individual applicant, a fixed
percentage of available seats. Unless Articles 30(1) and 29(2) are allowed
to operate in their separate fields then what started with the voluntary
’sprinkling’ of outsiders, would become a major inundation and a large
chunk of the right of an aided minority institution to operate for the
benefit of the community it was set up to serve would be washed away.
330. Apart from this difference with the view expressed by the majority
view on the interpretation of Article 29(2) and Article 30(1). I am also
unable to concur in the mode of determining the need of a minority
community for admission to an educational institution set up by such
community. Whether there has been a violation of Article 29(2) in refusing
admission to a non minority student in a particular case must be resolved
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 85 of 116
as it has been in the past by recourse to the Courts. It must be emphasised
that the right under Article 29(2) is an individual one. If the non-
minority student is otherwise eligible for admission, the decision on the
issue of refusal would depend on whether the minority institution is able
to establish that the refusal was only because it was satisfying the
requirements of its own community under Article 30(1). I cannot therefore
subscribe to the view expressed by the majority that the requirement of the
minority community for admission to a minority educational institution
should be left to the State or any other Governmental authority to
determine. If the Executive is given the power to determine the
requirements of the minority community in the matter of admission to its
educational institutions, we would be subjecting the minority educational
institution in question to an "intolerable encroachment" on the right under
Article 30(1) and let in by the back door as it were, what should be denied
entry altogether.
___________________________________________________________________________
S.N. Variava, J.
1. We have had the advantage of going through the judgment of the learned
Chief Justice of India, brother justice Khare, brother Justice Quadri and
sister Justice Ruma Pal. We are unable to agree with the views expressed by
brother Justice Quadri and sister Justice Ruma Pal. The learned Chief
Justice has categorised the various questions into the following
categories.
1) Is there a fundamental right to set up educational institutions and, if
so, under which provision;
2) Does the judgment in Unnikrichnan’s case require reconsideration?
3) In case of private unaided institutions can there be Government
regulations and if so the what extent?
4) In determining the existence of a religious or linguistic minority, in
relation to Article 30, what is to be the unit, the State or Country as a
whole; and
5) To what extent the rights of aided minority institutions to administer
be regulated.
2. Justice Khare has dealt with categories 4 and 5 above. On other aspects
he has agreed with the learned Chief Justice.
3. We are in agreement with the reasoning and conclusion of the learned
Chief Justice on categories 1 and 4. In respect of category 2 we agree with
the learned Chief Justice that the cost incurred on educating a student in
an unaided professional college was more than the total fee which is
realized on the basis of the formula fixed in the scheme. This had resulted
in revenue shortfalls. As pointed out by the learned Chief Justice even
though by a subsequence decision (to Unni Krishnan’s) this Court had
permitted some percentage of seats within the payment seats to be allotted
to Non-Resident Indians, against payment of a higher amount as determined
by the authorities, sufficient funds were still not available for the
development of those educational institutions. As pointed out by the
learned Chief Justice experience has shown that most of the "free seats"
were occupied by students from affluent families, while students from less
affluent families were required to pay much more to secure admission to
"payment seats". As pointed out by the learned Chief Justice the reason for
this was that students from affluent families had had better school
education and the benefit of professional coaching facilities and were,
therefore, able to secure higher merit positions in the common entrance
test, and thereby secured the free seats. The education of these more
affluent students was in a way being cross-subsidized by the financially
poorer students who, because of their lower position in the merit list,
could secure only "Payment seats". Thus we agree with the conclusion of the
learned Chief Justice that the scheme cannot be considered to be a
reasonable restriction and requires reconsideration and that the
regulations must be minimum. However we cannot lose sight of the ground
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 86 of 116
realities in our country. The majority of our population come from the
poorer section of our society. They cannot and will not be able to afford
the fees which will now be fixed pursuant to the judgment. There must
therefore be an attempt, not just on the part of the Government and the
State, but also by the educational institutions to ensure that students
from the poorer section of society get admission. One method would be by
making available scholarships or free seats. If the educational institution
is willing to provide free seats then the costs of such free seats could
also be partly covered by the fees which are now to be fixed. There should
be no harm in the rich subsidising the poor.
4. The learned Chief Justice has repeatedly emphasised that capitation fees
cannot be charged and that there must be no profiteering. We clarify that
the concerned authorities will always be entitled to prevent by enactment
or by regulations the charging of exorbitant fees or capitation fees. There
are many such enactments already in force. We have not gone not the
validity or otherwise of any such enactment. No arguments regarding the
validity of any such enactment have been submitted before us. Thus those
enactments will not be deemed to have been set aside by this judgment. Of
course now by virtue of this judgment the fee structure fixed under any
regulation or enactment will have to be reworked so as to enable
educational institutions not only to break even but also to generate some
surplus for future development/expansion and to provide for free seats.
5. We also wish to emphasis, what has already been stated by the learned
Chief Justice, that an educational institution must grant admission on some
identifiable and acceptable manner. It is only in exceptional cases, that
the management may refuse admission to a student. However, such refusal
must not be whimsical or for extraneous reasons meaning thereby that the
refusal must be based on some cogent and justifiable reasons.
6. In respect of categories 3 and 5 we wish to point out that this Court
has been constantly taking the view that these aided educational
institutions (whether majority or minority) should not have unfettered
freedom in the matter of administration and management. The State which
gives aid to educational institution including minority educational
institution can impose such conditions as are necessary for the proper
maintenance for the higher standards of education. State is also under an
obligation to protect the interests of the teaching and non-teaching staff.
In many States, there are various statutory provisions to regulate the
functioning of these educational institutions. Every educational
institution should have basic amenities. If it is a school, it should have
healthy surroundings for proper education; it should have a playground, a
laboratory, a library and other requisite facilities that are necessary for
a proper functioning of the school. The teachers who are working in the
schools should be governed by proper service conditions. In States where
the entire pay and allowances for the teaching staff and non-teaching staff
are paid by the State, the State has got ample power to regulate the method
of selection and appointment of teachers. State can also prescribe
qualifications for the teachers to be appointed in such schools. Similarly
in an aided schools, State sometimes provides aid for some of the teachers
only while denying the aid to other teachers. Sometimes the State does not
provide aid for the non-teaching staff. The State could, when granting aid,
provides for the age and qualifications or recruitment of a teacher, the
age of retirement and even for the manner in which an enquiry has to be
held by the institution. In other words there could be regulations which
ensure that service conditions for teachers and staff receiving aid of the
State and the teachers or the staff for which no aid is being provided are
the same. Pre-requisite to attract good teachers is to have good service
conditions. To bring about an uniformity in the service conditions State
should be put at liberty to prescribe the same without intervening in the
process of selection of the teachers or their removal, dismissal etc. We
agree that there need not be either prior and subsequent approval from any
functionaries of the State/University/Board (as the case may be) for
disciplinary action, removal or dismissal. However principles of natural
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 87 of 116
justice must be observed and as already provided, by the learned Chief
Justice all such action can be scrutinised by the Eduction Tribunal. The
provisions contained in the various enactments are not specially challenged
before us. The constitutional validity of the statutory provisions vis-a-
vis the rights under Articles 19(1)(g), Article 26, Article 29 and Article
30(1) of the Constitution can be examined only if a specific case is
brought before the Court. Educational Institution receiving State aid
cannot claim to have complete autonomy in the matter of administration.
They are found by various statutory provisions which are enacted to protect
the interests of the education, students and teachers. Many of the Statutes
were enacted long back and stood the test of time. Nobody has ever
challenged the provisions of these enactments. The regulations made by the
State, to a great extent, depend on the extent of the aid given to
institutions including minority institutions. In some States, a lumpsum
amount is paid as grant for maintenance of schools. In such cases, the
State may not be within its right to impose various restrictions, specially
regarding selection and appointment of teachers. But in some States the
entire salary of the teaching and non-teaching staff are paid, and these
employees are given pension and other benefits, the State may then have a
right and an obligation to see that the selection and appointment of
teachers are properly made. Similarly the State could impose conditions to
the effect that in the matter of appointments, preference shall be given to
weaker sections of the community, specially physically handicapped or
dependents of employees who died in harness. All such regulations may not
be said to be bad ad/or invalid and may not even amount to infringing the
rights of the minority conferred under Article 30(1) of the Constitution.
Statutory provisions such as labour laws and welfare legislations etc.
would be applicable to minority educational institutions. As this decision
is being rendered by a larger bench consisting of eleven judges, we feel
that it is not advisable and we should not be taken to have laid down
extensive guidelines in respect of myriads of legal questions that may
arise for consideration. In our view in this case the battlelines were not
drawn up in the correct perspective and many of the aggrieved or affected
parties were not before us.
7. As regards category 5, we agree with the conclusion of both the learned
Chief Justice as well as Justice Khare that Article 29(2) applies to
Article 30. However, we are unable to agree with the final reasoning that
there must be a balancing between Articles 29(2) and 30(1). We, therefore,
give our reasons for dis-agreeing with the final conclusion that there must
be a balancing between
Articles 29(2) and 30.
8. We are conscious of the fact that the learned Chief Justice and Justice
Khare have exhaustively dealt with the authorities. However, in our view
there is need to emphasise the same. We are here called upon to interpret
Articles 29(2) and 30. Submissions have been made that in interpreting
these Articles the historical background must be kept in mind and that a
contextual approach should be taken. We must, therefore, a) look at the
history which led to incorporation of these Articles. The intention of the
framers will then disclose how the contextual approach must be based; b)
apply the well settled principles of interpretation; and c) keep the
doctrine of "State Decisis" in mind.
9. In the case of Kesavananda Bharati v. State of Kerala, it has been held
that in interpreting the provisions of a Statute or the Constitution it is
the duty of the Court to find out the legislative intent. It has been held
that Constituent Assembly debates are not conclusive but that, in a
Constitutional matter where the intent of the framers of the Constitution
is to be ascertained, the Court should look into the proceedings and the
relevant data, including the speeches, which throw light on ascertaining
the intent. In considering the nature and extent of rights conferred on
minorities one must keep in mind the historical background and see how and
for what purpose Article 30 was framed.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 88 of 116
10. In the case of R.S. Nayak v. A.R. Antulay reported in AIR (1984) SC 684
at page 686, it has been held as follows:
"Reports of the Committee which preceded the enactment of a legislation,
reports of Joint Parliament Committee, report of a Commission set up for
collecting information leading to the enactment are permissible external
aid to construction. If the basic purpose underlying construction of
legislation is to ascertain the real intention of the Parliament, why
should the aids which Parliament availed of such as report of a Special
Committee preceding the enactment, existing state of Law, the environment
necessitating enactment of legislation, and the object sought to be
achieved, be denied to Court whose function is primarily to give effect to
the real intention of the Parliament in enacting the legislation. Such
denial would deprive the Court of a substantial and illuminating aid to
construction.
The modern approach has to a considerable extent eroded the exclusionary
rule even in England."
11. The partition of India caused great anguish, pain, bitterness and
distrust amongst the various communities residing in India. Initially there
was a demand for separate electorate and reservation of seats. However the
principle of unity and equality for all prevailed. In return it was agreed
that minorities would be given special protections.
12. The reason why Article 30(1) was embodied in the Constitution has been
set out by Chief Justice Ray (as he then was) in the case of St. Xaviers
College v. State of Gujarat. The relevant portion reads as follows:
"The right to establish and administer educational institutions of their
choice has been conferred on religious and linguistic minorities so that
the majority who can always having their rights by having proper
legislation do not pass a legislation prohibiting minorities to establish
and administer educational institutions of their choice.
xxx xxx xxx
xxx xxx xxx xxx xxx xxx
Every section of the public, the majority as well as minority has rights in
respect of religion as contemplated in Articles 25 and 26 and rights in
respect of language, script, culture as contemplated in Article 29. The
whole object of conferring the right on minorities under Article 30 is to
ensure that there will be equality between the majority and the minority.
If the minorities do not have such special protection they will be denied
equality.
xxx xxx xxx
xxx xxx xxx xxx xxx xxx
The real reason embodied in Article 30(1) of the Constitution is the
conscience of the nation that the minorities, religious as well as
linguistic, are not prohibited from establishing and administering
educational institutions of their choice for the purpose of giving their
children the best general education to make them complete men and women of
the country. The minorities are given this protection under Article 30 in
order to preserve and strengthen the integrity and unity of the country.
The sphere of general secular education is intended to develop the
commonness of boys and girls of our country. this is in the true spirit of
liberty, equality and fraternity through the medium of education. If
religious or linguistic minorities are not given protection under Article
30 to establish and administer educational institutions of their choice,
they will feel isolated and separate. General secular education will open
doors of perception and act as the natural light of mind for our countrymen
to live in the whole." (emphasis supplied)
In the same Judgment, Justice Khanna has held as follows:
"Before we deal with the contentions advanced before us and the scope and
ambit of Article 30 of the Constitution, it may be pertinent to refer to
the historical background. India is the second most populous country of the
world. The people inhabiting this vast land profess different religions and
speak different languages. Despite the diversity of religion and language,
there runs through the fabric of the nation the golden thread of a basic
innate unity. It is a mosaic of different religions, languages and
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 89 of 116
cultures. Each of them has made a mark on the Indian polity and India today
represents a synthesis of them all. The closing years of the British rule
were marked by communal riots and dissentions. There was also a feeling of
distrust and the demand was made by a section of the Muslims for a separate
homeland. This ultimately resulted in the partition of the country. Those
who led the fight for independence in India always laid great stress on
communal amity and accord. They wanted the establishment of a secular State
wherein people belonging to the different religions should all have a
feeling of equality and non-discrimination. Demand had also been made
before the partition by sections of people belonging to the minorities for
reservation of seats and separate electorates. In order to bring about
integration and fusion of the different sections of the population, the
framers of the Constitution did away with separate electorates and
introduced the system of joint electorates, so that every candidate in an
election should have to look for support of all sections of the citizens.
Special safeguards were guaranteed for the minorities and they were made a
part of the fundamental rights with a view to instil a sense of confidence
and security in the minorities. Those provisions were a king of a Charter
of rights for the minorities so that none might have the feeling that any
section of the population consisted of first-class citizens and the others
of second-class citizens. (emphasis supplied)
13. This was the basis on which minority rights were guaranteed. The rights
were created so that minorities need have no apprehension that they would
not be able, either in the religious or in the educational fields, to do
what the politically powerful majority could do. In matters of education
what the politically powerful majority could do was to establish and
administer educational institutions of their choice at their own expense.
Principles of equality required that the minorities be given the same
rights. The protection/special right was to ensure that the minorities
could also establish and administer educational institutions of their
choice at their own expense. The demand for separatism and separate
electorates was given up as principles of secularism and equality were
considered more important. The principle of secularism and equality meant
that State would not discriminate on grounds of religion, race, caste,
language or any of them. Thus once State aid was given and/or taken then,
whether majority or minority, all had to adhere to principles of equality
and secularism. There never was any intention or desire to create a special
or privileged class of citizens.
14. With this background, it is necessary to see how Articles 29 and 30
came to be framed/incorporated in the Constitution. Mr. Munshi was a strong
advocate for minority rights. Mr. Munshi sent to the Advisory Committee a
Note with which he forwarded a draft Constitution. This draft Constitution
clearly indicates what rights were contemplated in framing, what is now,
Article 30(1) Draft Article VI read as follows:
"The Right to Religious and Cultural Freedom
(1) All citizens are equally entitled to freedom of conscience and to the
right freely to profess and practise religion in a manner compatible with
public order, morality or health :
Provided that the economic, financial or political activities associated
with religious worship shall not be deemed to be included in the right to
profess or practise religion.
(2) All citizens are entitled to cultural freedom, to the use of their
mother tongue and the script thereof, and to adopt, study or use any other
language and script of their choice.
(3) Citizens belonging to national minorities in a State whether based on
religion or language have equal rights with other citizens in forming,
controlling and administering at their own expense, charitable, religious
and social institutions, schools and other educational establishments with
the free use of their language and practice of their religion. (emphasis
supplied.
(4) No person may be compelled to pay taxes the proceeds of which are
specifically appropriated in payment of religious requirements of any
community of which he is not a member.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 90 of 116
(5) Religious instruction shall not be compulsory for a member of a
community which does not profess such religion.
(6) No person under the age of eighteen shall be free to change his
religious persuasion without the permission of his parent or guardian.
(7) Conversion from one religion to another brought about by coercion,
undue influence or the offering of material inducement is prohibited and is
punishable by the law of the Union.
(8) It shall be the duty of every unit to provide, in the public
educational system in towns and districts in which a considerable
proportion of citizens of other than the language of the unit are
residents, adequate facilities for ensuring that in the primary schools the
instruction shall be given to the children of such citizens through the
medium of their own language.
Nothing in this clause shall be deemed to prevent the unit from making the
teaching of the national language in the variant and script of the choice
of the pupil obligatory in the schools.
(9) No legislation providing State-aid for schools shall discriminate
against schools under the management of minorities whether based on
religion or language.
Every monument of artistic or historic interest or place of natural
interest throughout the Union is guaranteed immunity from spoliation,
destruction, removal, disposal or export except under a law of the Union,
and shall be preserved and maintained according to the law or the Union."
This shows that the intention was to give to the minorities the right to
form, control and administer, amongst others educational institutions, at
their own expense. It is also to be noted that Article (9) is similar to
what is now Article 30(2). As the educational institutions were to be at
their own expense, State aid was not made compulsory.
15. At this stage it must be remembered that the minorities to whom rights
were being given, were not minorities who were socially and/or economically
backward. There was no fear that economically, these religious or
linguistic minorities, would not be able to establish and administer
educational institution. There was also no fear that, in educational
Institutions established for the benefit of all citizens, the children of
these religious or linguistic minorities would not be able to compete.
These rights were being conferred only to ensure that the majority, who due
to their numbers would be politically powerful, did not prevent the
minorities from establishing and administering their own educational
institutions. In so providing, the basic feature of the Constitution,
namely, secularism and equality for all citizens, whether majority or
minority was being
kept in mind.
16. In this behalf, an extract from Kesavananda’s case is very relevant. It
reads as follows:
"It may be recalled that as regards the minorities the Cabinet Mission had
recognised in their report to the British Cabinet on May 6, 1946, only
three main communities: general, Muslims and Sikhs. General community
included all those who were non-Muslims or non-Sikhs. The Mission had
recommended an Advisory Committee to be set up by the Constituent Assembly
which was to frame the rights of citizens, minorities, tribals and excluded
areas. The Cabinet Mission statement had actually provided for the cession
of sovereignty to the Indian people subject only to two matters which were:
(1) willingness to conclude a treaty with His Majesty’s Government to cover
matters arising out of transfer of power and (2) adequate provisions for
the protection of the minorities. Pursuant to the above and Paras 5 and 6
of the Objectives Resolution the Constituent Assembly set up an Advisory
Committee on January 24, 1947. The Committee was to consist of
representatives of muslims, the depressed classes or the scheduled castes,
the Sikhs, Christians, Parsis, Anglo-Indians, tribals and excluded areas
besides the Hindus. As a historical fact it is safe to say that at a
meeting held on May 11, 1949, a resolution for the abolition of all
reservations for minorities other than the scheduled castes found whole-
hearted support from an overwhelming majority of the members of the
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 91 of 116
Advisory Committee. So far as the schedule castes were concerned it was
felt that their peculiar position would necessitate special reservation for
them for a period of ten years. It would not be wrong to say that the
separate representation of minorities which had been the feature of the
previous Constitutions and which had witnesses so much of communal tension
and strife was given up in favour of joint electorates in consideration of
the guarantee of fundamental rights and minorities’ rights which it was
decided to incorporate into the new Constitution. The Objectives Resolution
can be taken into account as a historical fact which moulded its nature and
character. Since the language of the Preamble was taken from the resolution
itself the declaration in the Preamble that India would be a Sovereign
Democratic Republic which would secure to all its citizens justice, liberty
and equality was implemented in Parts III and IV and other provisions of
Constitution. These formed not only the essential features of the
Constitution but also the fundamental conditions upon and the basis on
which the various groups and interest adopted the Constitution as the
Preamble hoped to create one unified integrated community. (emphasis
supplied)"
17. The draft Articles were then forwarded by the Advisory Committee to a
Committee for fundamental rights. They were also forwarded to another
Committee known as the Committee of Minorities. These two Committees
thereafter revised the draft and the revised draft was then forwarded to
the Constituent Assembly for discussion. The relevant portion of the
revised draft read as follows:
"Rights relating to Religion
13. All persons are equally entitled to freedom of conscience, and the
right freely to profess, practise and propagate religion subject to public
order, morality or health and to the other provisions of this Part.
Explanation 1. - The wearing the carrying of kirpans shall be deemed to be
included in the profession of the Sikh religion.
Explanation 2. - The above rights shall not include any economic,
financial, political or other secular activities that may be associated
with religious practice.
Explanation 3. - The freedom of religious practice guaranteed in this
clause shall not debar the State from enacting laws for the purpose of
social welfare and reform and for throwing open Hindu religious
institutions of a public character to any class or section of Hindus.
14. Every religious denomination or a section thereof shall have the right
to manage its own affairs in matters of religion and, subject to law, to
own, acquire and administer property, movable and immovable, and to
establish and maintain institutions for religious or charitable purposes.
15. No person may be compelled to pay taxes, the proceeds of which are
specifically appropriated to further or maintain any particular religion or
denomination.
16. No person attending any school maintained or receiving aid out of
public funds shall be compelled to take part in the religious instruction
that may be given in the school or to attend religious worship held in the
school or in premises attached thereto.
17. Conversion from one religion to another brought about by coercion or
undue influence shall not be recognised by law.
Cultural and Educational Rights
18. (1) Minorities in every unit shall be protected in respect of their
language, script and culture, and no laws or regulations may be enacted
that may operate oppressively or prejudicially in this respect.
(2) No minority whether based on religion, community or language shall be
discriminated against in regard to the admission into State educational
institutions, nor shall any religious instruction be compulsorily imposed
on them.
(3)(a). All minorities whether based on religion, community or language
shall be free in any unit to establish and administer educational
institutions of their choice.
(b) The State shall not, while providing State aid to schools, discriminate
against schools under the management or minorities whether based on
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 92 of 116
religion, community or language."
Thus under Clause 18(3)(a) minorities based on religion, community and
language were to be free to establish and administer educational
institutions. The Constituent Assembly Debates, of 30th August, 1947,
indicate that it was understood and clear that the right to establish and
administer educational institutions was to be at their own expense. During
the Debate on 30th August, 1947, Mr. K.T.M. Ahmed Ibrahim Sahib Bahadur
proposed an amendment in Clause 18(2). The suggested amendment read as
follows:
"Provided that this clause does not apply to state Educational institutions
maintained mainly for the benefit of any particular community or section of
the people."
18. Similarly Mrs. Purnima Banerji proposed an amendment to the effect that
under Clause 18(2) after the words "state" the words "and State-aided" be
inserted. To be noted that both Mr. K.T.M. Ahmed and Mrs. Purnima Banerji
were, by their proposed amendments, seeking to enhance rights of
minorities. The discussions which follow these proposed amendments are very
illustrative and informative. These discussions read as follows:
"Mrs. Purnima Banerji: Sir, my amendment is to clause 18(2). It reads as
follows:-
"That after the word ’State’, the words ’and State-aided’ be inserted."
The purpose of the amendment is that no minority, whether based on
community or religion shall be discriminated against in regard to the
admission into State-aided and State educational institutions. Many of the
provinces, e.g., U.P., have passed resolutions laying down that no
educational institution will forbid the entry of any members of any
community merely on the ground that they happened to belong to a particular
community - even if that institution is maintained by a donor who has
specified that that institution should only cater for members of his
particular community. If that institution seeks State aid, it must allow
members of other communities to enter into it. In the olden days, in the
Anglo-Indian schools (it was laid down that, though those school were
specifically intended for Anglo-Indians, 10 per cent of the seats should be
given to Indians. In the latest report adopted by this House, it is laid
down at 40 per cent. I suggest Sir, that if this clause is included without
the amendment in the Fundamental Rights, it will be a step backward and
many Provinces who have taken a step forward will have to retract their
steps. We have many institutions conducted by very philanthropic people,
who have left large sums of money at their disposal. While we welcome such
donations, when a principle has been laid down that, if any institution
receives State aid, it cannot discriminate or refuse admission to members
of other communities, then it should be followed. We know, Sir, that many a
Province has got provincial feelings. If this provision is included as a
fundamental right, I suggest that it will be highly detrimental. The
Honourable Mover has not told us what was the reason why he specifically
excluded State-aided institutions from this clause. If he had explained it,
probably the House would have been convinced. I hope that all the
educationists and other members of this House will support my amendment
(emphasis supplied)
Even though Mrs. Purnima Banerji is seeking to give further protection to
students of minority community, her speech indicates the principle,
accepted by all, that if an institute receives State aid it cannot
discriminate or refuse admission to members of other communities. the reply
of Mr. Munshi is as follows:-
Mr. K.M. Munshi: Mr. President, Sir, the scope of this Clause 18(2) is only
restricted to this, that where the State has got an educational institution
of its own, no minority shall be discriminated against. Now, this does
recognise to some extent the principle that the State cannot own an
institution from which a minority is excluded. As a matter of fact, this to
some extent embodies the converse proposition over which discussion took
place on Clause 16, namely no minority shall be excluded from any school
maintained by the State. That being so, it secures the purpose which
members discussed a few minutes ago. This is the farthest limit to which I
think, a fundamental right can go.
Regarding Ibrahim Sahib’s amendment, I consider that it practically
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 93 of 116
destroys the whole meaning and content of this fundamental right. This
minority right is intended to prevent majority control legislatures from
favouring their own community to the exclusion of other communities. The
question therefore is : Is it suggested that the State should be at liberty
to endow schools for minorities? Then it will come to this that the
minority will be a favoured section of the public. This destroys the very
basis of a fundamental right. I submit that it should rejected. (emphasis
supplied)
xxx xxx xxx
Then comes Mrs. Banerji’s amendment. it is wider than the clause itself. As
I pointed out, Clauses 16 to 18 are really two different propositions. This
is with regard to communities. Through the medium of a fundamental right,
not by legislation, not by administrative action this amendment seeks to
close down thousands of institutions in this country.
I can mention one thing so far as my province is concerned there are
several hundreds of Hindu Schools and several dozens of Muslim Schools.
Many of them are run by charities which are exclusively Hindu or Muslim.
Still the educational policy of the State during the Congress regime has
been that as far as possible no discrimination should be permitted against
any pupil by administrative action in these schools. Whenever a case of
discrimination is found, the Educational Inspector goes into it;
particularly with regard to Harijans it has been drastically done in the
Province of Bombay. Now if you have a fundamental right like this, a school
which has got a thousand students and receives Rs. 500 by way of grant from
Government, becomes a State aided School. A trust intended for one
community maintains the School and out of Rs. 50,000 spent for the School
Rs. 500 only comes from Government as grant. But immediately the Supreme
Court must hold that this right comes into operation as regards this
School. Now this, as I said, can best be done by legislation in the
provinces, through the administrative action of the Government which takes
into consideration susceptibilities and sometimes makes allowances for
certain conditions. How can you have a Fundamental law about this? How can
you divert crores of rupees of trust for some other purpose by a stroke of
the pen? The idea seems to be that by placing these two lines in the
constitution everything in this country has to be changed without even
consulting the people or without even allowing the legislatures to consider
it. I submit that looking into the present conditions it is much better
that these things should be done by the normal process of educating the
people rather than by putting in a Fundamental Right. This clause is
intended to be restrictive that neither the Federation nor a unit shall
maintain an institution from which minorities are excluded. If we achieve
this, this will be a very great advance that we would have made and the
House should be content with this much advance."
Thus to be seen that Mr. Munshi echoed the sentiment so often expressed by
Counsel before us i.e. that by securing a small amount of aid, the right to
administer educational institutions cannot be given up. This was
immediately answered as follows:
"Mr. Hussain Imam : I will not take more than two minutes of the time of
the House. I think there is nothing wrong with the amendment which has been
moved by Mrs. Banerji. She neither wants those endowed institutions to be
closed, nor their funds to be diverted to purposes for which they were not
intended. What she does ask is that the State being a secular State, must
not ge a party to exclusion. It is open to the institutions which want to
restrict admission to particular communities or particular classes, to
refuse State aid and thereby, after they have refused to State aid, they
are free to restrict their admission of the students to any class they
like. The State will have no say in the matter. Here the word ’recognize’
has not been put in. In Clause 16 we put the all embracing word
’recognize’. Therefore all this trouble arose that we had to refer that to
a small Committee. In this clause the position is very clear. And Mr.
Munshi, as a clever lawyer, has tried to cloud this. It is open to the
institution which has spent Rs. 40,000 from its funds not to receive Rs.
500 as grant from the State but it will be open to the State to declare
that as a matter of State policy exclusiveness must not be accepted and
this would apply equally to the majority institutions as well as minority
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 94 of 116
institutions. No institution receiving State aid should close its door to
any other class of persons in India merely because its donor has originally
so desired to restrict. They are open to refuse the State aid and they can
have any restriction they like. (emphasis supplied)
xxx xxx xxx
Pandit Hirday Nath Kunzru : Mr. President, I support the amendment moved by
Mrs. Banerji. I followed with great interest Mr. Munshi’s exposition. His
view was that if we accepted the principle that educational institutions
maintained by the State shall be bound to admit boys of all communities, it
would be a great gain and that we should not mix up this matter with other
matters howsoever important they may be. I appreciate his view point.
Nevertheless I think that it is desirable in view of the importance that we
have attached to various provisions accepted by us regarding the
development of a feeling of unity in the country that we should today
accept the principle that a boy shall be at liberty to join any school
whether maintained by the State or by any private agency which receives aid
from State funds. No school should be allowed to refuse to admit a boy on
the score of his religion. This does not mean, Sir, as Mr. Munshi seems to
think, that the Headmaster of any school would be under a compulsion to
admit any specified number of boys belonging to any particular community.
Take for instance an Islamia School. If 200 Hindu boys offer themselves for
admission to that School, the Headmaster will be under no obligation to
admit all of them. But the boys will not be debarred, from seeking
admission to it simply because they happen to be Hindus. The Headmaster
will lay down certain principles in order to determine which boys should be
admitted.
xxx xxx xxx
Sir, we have decided not to allow separate representation in order to
create a feeling of oneness throughout the country. We have even disallowed
cumulative voting because, as Sardar Vallabhabhai Patel truly stated the
other day, its acceptance would mean introduction by the backdoor of the
dangerous principle of communal electorates which we threw out of the front
door. So great being the importance that we attach to the development of a
feeling of nationalism, is it not desirable and it is not necessary that
our educational institutions which are maintained or aided by the State
should not cater exclusively for boys belonging to any particular religion
or community? If it is desirable in the case of adults that a feeling of
unity should be created, is it not much more desirable where immature
children and boys are concerned that no principle should be accepted which
would allow the dissemination, directly or indirectly, of anti-national
ideas or feelings?
Sir, since the future welfare of every State depends on education, it is I
think very important that we should today firmly lay down the principle
that a school, even though it may be a private school, should be open to
the children of all communities if it receives aid from Government. This
principle will be in accordance with the decisions that we have arrived at
on other matters so far. Its non-acceptance will be in conflict with the
general view regarding the necessity of unity which we have repeatedly and
emphatically expressed in this House. (emphasis supplied)
These discussions clearly indicate that the main emphasis was on unity and
equality. The protection which was being given to the minorities was merely
to ensure that the politically strong majority did not prevent the
minorities from having educational institutions at their own expense. It is
clear that the framers always intended that the principles of secularism
and equality were to prevail over even minorities’ rights. If the State aid
was taken then there could be no discrimination or refusal to admit members
of other communities. On this basis the amendments moved by Mr. K.T.M.
Ahmed Ibrahim Sahib Bahadur and Mrs. Purnima Banerji (which sought to
create additional rights in favour of minorities) were rejected.
19. The draft was taken sent back to the Committee. When it came back to
the Constituent Assembly the relevant Articles read as follows:
"22. (1) No religious instruction shall be provided by the State in any
educational institution wholly maintained out of State funds:
Provided that nothing in this clause shall apply to an educational
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 95 of 116
institution which is administered by the State but has been established
under any endowment or trust which requires that religious instruction
shall be imparted in such institution.
(2) No person attending any education Institution recognised by the State
or receiving aid out of State funds shall be required to take part in any
religious instruction that may be imparted in such institution or to attend
any religious worship that may be conducted in such institution or in any
premises attached thereto unless such person, or if such person is a minor,
his guardian has given his consent thereto.
(3) Nothing in this article shall prevent any community or denomination
from providing religious instruction for pupils of that community or
denomination in an educational institution outside its working hours.
Cultural and educational rights
23. (1) Any section of the citizens residing in the territory of India or
any part thereof having a distinct language, script and culture of its own
shall have the right to conserve the same.
(2) No minority whether based on religion, community or language shall be
discriminated against the regard to the admission of any person belonging
to such minority into any educational institution maintained by the State.
(3)(a) All minorities whether based on religion, community or language
shall have the right to establish and administer educational institutions
of their choice.
(b) The State shall not, in granting aid to educational institutions,
discriminate against any educational institution on the ground that it is
under the management of a minority, whether based on religion, community or
language.
20. These were discussed in the Constituent Assembly on 7th and 8th
December, 1948. It must be noted that there was a practice to circulate in
advance, any proposed amendment, which a Member desired to move. The
proposed amendment was circulated in advance for sound reasons, namely that
every body else would have notice of it and be prepared to express views
for or against the proposed amendment. On 7th December, 1948 Clause 22 was
being considered, Mr. H.V. Kamath proposed as follows:
"Shri H.V. Kamath (C.P. and Berar : General). Mr. Vice President, I move-
"That in Clause (2) of Article 22, the words "recognised by the State or"
be deleted."
I move this amendment with a view to obtaining some clarification on
certain dark corners of these two articles - Articles 22 and 23. I hope
that my learned Friend Dr. Ambedkar will not, in his reply, merely toe the
line of least resistance and say "I oppose this amendment", but will be
good enough to give some reasons why he opposes or rejects my amendment,
and I hope he will try his best to throw some light on the obscure corners
of this article. If we scan the various clauses of this article carefully
and turn a sidelong glance at the next articles too, we will find that
there are some inconsistencies or at least an inconsistency. Clause (1) of
Article 22 imposes an absolute ban on religious instruction in institutions
which are wholly maintained out of State funds. The proviso, however,
excludes such institutions as are administered by the State which have been
established under an endowment or trust - that is, under the proviso those
institutions which have been established under an endowment or trust and
which require, under the conditions of the trust, that religious
instruction must be provided in those institutions, about those, when the
State administers then, there will not be any objection to religious
instruction. Clause (2) lays down that no person attending an institution
recognised by the State or receiving aid out of State funds shall be
required to take part in religious instruction. The means, it would not be
compulsory. I am afraid I will have to turn to Clause 23, Sub-clause (3)
(a) where it is said that all minorities, whether based on religion,
community or language, shall have the right to establish and administer
educational institutions of their choice. Now, is it intended that the
institutions referred to in the subsequent clause which minorities may
establish and conduct and administer according to their own choice, is it
intended that in these institutions the minorities would not be allowed to
provide religious instruction? There may be institutions established by
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 96 of 116
minorities, which insist on students’ attendance at religious classes in
those institutions and which are otherwise unobjectionable. There is no
point about State aid, but I cannot certainly understand why the State
should refuse recognition to those institutions established by minorities
where they insist on compulsory attendance at religious classes. Such
interference by the State I feel is unjustified and unnecessary. Besides,
this conflicts with the next article to a certain extent. If minorities
have the right to establish and administer educational institutions of
their own choice, is it contended by the Honourable Dr. Ambedkar that the
State will say "You can have institutions, but you should not have
religious instructions in them if you want our recognition’. Really it
beats me how you can reconcile these two points of view in Articles 22 and
23. The minority, as I have already said, may establish such a school or
its own pupils and make religious instruction compulsory in that school. If
you do not recognise that institution, then certainly that school will not
prosper and it will fail at attract pupils. Moreover, we have guaranteed
certain rights to the minorities and, it may be in a Christian School, they
may teach the pupils the Bible and in a Muslim school the Koran. If the
minorities, Christians and Muslims, can administer those institutions
according to their choice and manner, does the House mean to suggest that
the State shall not recognize such institutions? Sir, to my mind, if you
pursue such a course, the promises we have made to the minorities in our
country, the promises we have made to the ear we shall have broken to the
heart. Therefore I do not see any point why, in institutions that are
maintained and conducted and administered by the minorities for pupils of
their own community the State should refuse to grant recognition, in case
religious instruction is compulsory. When once you have allowed them to
establish schools according to their choice, it is inconsistent that you
should refuse recognition to them on that ground. I hope something will be
done to rectify this inconsistency."
Thus it is to be seen that Shri H.V. Kamath is referring not just to draft
Article
22 but also to draft Article 23(3)(a). He is pointing out that there is an
apparent conflict between these two Articles. Draft Articles 22 and 23(3)
(a) are, with minor changes, what are now Articles 28(3) and 30(1). Dr.
Ambedkar opposed the amendments proposed by Shri H.V. Kamath for various
reasons, one of which is as follows:
"We have accepted the proposition which is embodied in Article 21, that
public funds raised by taxes shall not be utilised for the benefit of any
particular community."
21. Shri H.V. Kamath then asked for a clarification as follows:
"On a point of clarification, what about institutions and schools run by a
community or a minority for its own pupils - not a school where all
communities are mixed but a school run by the community for its own
pupils?"
22. Thus Shri H.V. Kamath is again emphasising that there could be minority
educational institutions run for their own pupils. The answer to this, by
Dr. Ambedkar, is as follows:
The Honourable Dr. B.R. Ambedkar: If my Friend Mr. Kamath will read the
other article he will see that once an institution, whether maintained by
the community or not, gets a grant, the condition is that it shall keep the
school open to all communities, that provision he has not read." (emphasis
supplied)
23. To be noted that in the draft Articles there is no clause which
provided that if an institution, whether maintained by the community or
not, gets a grant, it shall keep the school open to all communities. The
next clause which Dr. Ambedkar referred to, was the proposed amendment
moved by Pandit Thakur Dass Bhargava. As stated above this proposed
amendment had already been circulated to all. It is clear that Dr. Ambedkar
had already accepted the proposal of Pandit Thakur Dass Bharvava.
24. On 8th December, 1948, when Pandit Thakur Dass Bhargava moved his
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 97 of 116
amendment, the debate read as follows:
"Pandit Thakur Das Bhargava: Sir, I beg to move.
That for amendment No. 687 of the List of amendments, the following be
substituted:-
"That for Clause (2) of Article 23, the following be substituted :-
"(2) No citizen shall be denied admission into any educational institution
maintained by the State or receiving aid out of State funds of grounds only
of religion, race, caste, language or any of them."
and Sub-clauses (a) and (b) of Clause (3) of Article 23 be renumbered and
new Article 23-A".
Sir, I find there are three points of difference between this amendment and
the provisions of the section which it seeks to amend. The first is to put
in the words ’no citizen’ for the words ’no majority’. Secondly that not
only the institutions which are maintained by the State will be included in
it, but also such institutions as are receiving aid out of state funds.
Thirdly, we have, instead of the words "religion, community or language",
the words, "religion, race, caste, language or any of them".
Now, Sir, it is happens that the words "no minority" seeks to differentiate
the minority from the majority, whereas you would be pleased to see that in
the Chapter the words of the heading are "cultural and educational rights",
so that the minority rights as such should not find any place under this
section. Now if we read Clause (2) it would appear as if the minority had
been given certain definite rights in this clause, whereas the national
interests require that no majority also should be discriminated against in
this matter. Unfortunately, there is in some matters a tendency that the
minorities as such possess and are given certain special rights which are
denied to the majority. It was the habit of our English masters that they
wanted to create discriminations of this sort between the minority and the
majority. Sometimes the minority said that they were discriminated against
and on other occasions the majority felt the same thing. This amendment
brings the majority and the minority on an equal status.
In educational matters, I cannot understand, from the national point of
view, how any discrimination can be justified in favour of a minority or a
majority. Therefore, what this amendment seeks to do is that the majority
and the minority are brought on the same level. There will be no
discrimination between any member of the minority or majority in so far as
admission to educational institutions are concerned. So I should say that
this is a charter of the liberties for the student-world of the minority
and the majority communities equally.
The second change which is amendment seeks to make is in regard to the
institutions which will be governed by this provision of law. Previously
only the educational institutions maintained by the State were included.
This amendment seeks to include such other institutions as are aided by
State funds. There are a very large number of such institutions, and in
future, by this amendment the rights of the minority have been broadened
and the rights of the majority have been secured. So this is a very healthy
amendment and it is a kind of nation-building amendment.
Now, Sir, the word "community" is sought to be removed from this provision
because "community" has no meaning. If it is a fact that the existence of a
community is determined by some common characteristic and all communities
are covered by the words religion or language, then "community" as such has
no basis. So the word "community" is meaningless and the words substituted
are "race or caste". So this provision is so broadened that on the score of
caste, race, language, or religion no discrimination can be allowed.
My submission is that considering the matter from all the standpoints, this
amendment is one which should be accepted unanimously by this House."
(emphasis supplied)
25. To be noted that the proposed Article 23(2) is now Article 29(2). It is
being incorporated in Article 23 which also contained what is now Article
30(1). Pandit Thakur Dass Bhargava was proposing this amendment with the
clear intention that it should apply to minority educational institutions
under, what is now Article 30(1). The whole purpose is to further
principles of secularism and to see that in State maintained and State
aided educational institutions there was no distinction between majority or
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 98 of 116
minority communities. At this stage it must be noted that no contrary view
was expressed at all. Dr. Ambedkar then replied as follows:
"The Honourable Dr. B.R. Ambedkar: Sir, of the amendments which have been
moved to Article 23, I can accept amendment No. 26 to amendment No. 687 by
Pandit Thakur Dass Bhargava. I am also prepared to accept amendment No. 31
to amendment No. 690, also moved by Pandit Thakur Dass Bhargava."
26. The amendment proposed by Pandit Thakur Dass Bhargava was unanimously
accepted by the Constituent Assembly. This is how and why, what is now
Article 29(2) was framed and incorporated. Clearly it was to govern all
educational institutions including minority educational institutions under
what is now Article 30(1). The final resolution is as follows:
"Mr. Vice-President: The question is:
That for Clause (2) of Articles 23, the following be substituted:-
"No citizen shall be denied admission into any educational institution
maintained by the State or receiving aid out of State funds on grounds only
of religion, race, caste, language or any of them";
and Sub-clause (a) and (B) of Clause (3) of Article 23 be renumbered as new
Article 23-A.
The motion was adopted."
27. A reading of the Constituent Assembly debates clearly show that the
intention of the framers of the Constitution was that Article 29(2) was to
apply to all educational institutions, including minority educational
institutions under Article 30.
28. This being the historical background and the intention of the framers,
the contextual approach must also be one which gives effect to the minority
rights but which does not elevate them into a special or privileged class
of citizens. The contextual approach must therefore be that minorities have
full rights to establish and administer educational institution at their
own costs, but if they choose to take State aid they must then abide by the
Constitutional mandate of Article 29(2) and with principles of equality and
secularism.
29. The same result follows if well settled principles of interpretation
are applied. It is settled law that if the language of the provision, being
considered, is plain and unambiguous the same must be given effect to,
irrespective of the consequences that may result or arise. It is also
settled law that while interpreting provisions of a Statute, if two
interpretations are possible, one which leads to no conflict between the
various provisions and another which leads to a conflict between the
various provisions, then the interpretation which leads to no conflict must
always be accepted. As already been seen, the intention of the framers of
the Constitution is very clear. The framers unambiguously and unanimously
intended that rights given under Article 30(1) could be fully enjoyed so
long as the educational institutions were established and administered at
their own costs and expense. Once State aid was taken, then principles of
equality and secularism, on which our Constitution is based, were to
prevail and admission could not be denied to any student on grounds of
religion, race, caste, language or any of them.
30. A plain reading of Article 29(2) shows that it applies to "any
educational institution" maintained by the State or receiving aid out of
State funds. The words "any educational institution" takes within its ambit
an educational institution established under Article 30(1). It is to be
remembered that when Article 29(2) [i.e. Article 23(2)] was framed it was
part of the same Article which contained what is now Article 30(1). Thus it
was clearly meant to apply to Article 30(1) as well. Significantly Article
30 nowhere provides that the provisions of Article 29(2) would not apply to
it. Article 30(1) does not exclude the applicability of the provisions of
Article 29(2) to educational institutions established under it. A plain
reading of the two Articles indicates that the rights given under Article
30(1) can be fully exercised so long as no aid is taken from the State. It
is for this reason that Article 30 does not make it compulsory for a
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 99 of 116
minority educational institution to take aid or for the State to give it.
All that Article 30(2) provides is that the State in granting aid to
educational institutions shall not discriminate against any educational
institution on the ground that it is under the management of a minority. In
cases where the State gives aid to educational institutions the State would
be bound by the Constitutional mandate of Article 29(2) to ensure that no
citizen is denied admission into the educational institution on grounds of
religion, race, caste, language or any of them. By so insisting the State
would not be discriminating against a minority educational institution. It
would only be performing the obligation cast upon it by the Constitution of
India.
31. This interpretation is also supported by the wording of Article 30(2).
Article 30(2) merely provides that the State shall not discriminate on the
ground that it is under the management of a minority. To be noted that
Article 30(2) does not provide that State shall not in granting aid impose
any condition which would restrict or abridge the rights guaranteed under
Article 30(1). The framers were aware that when State aid was taken the
principles of equality and secularism, which are the basis of our
Constitution, would have to prevail. Clearly the framers of the
Constitution considered the principle of equality and secularism to be more
important than the rights under Article 30(1). Thus in Article 30(2) it was
advisedly not provided that rights under Article 30(1) could not be
restricted or abridged whilst granting aid. A plain reading of Article
30(2) shows that the framers of the Constitution envisaged that certain
rights would get restricted and/or abridged when a minority educational
institute chose to receive aid. It must also be noted that when property
rights were deleted [by deletion of Article 19(1)(f)] the framers of the
Constitution realised that rights under Article 30(1) would get restricted
or abridged unless specifically protected. Thus Article 30(1A) was
introduced. Article 30(1A), unlike Article 30(2), specifically provides the
acquisition of property of a minority educational institute must be in a
manner which does not restrict or abrogate the rights under Article 30(1).
When the framers so intended they have specifically so provided.
Significantly even after Judgments of this Court (set out hereafter) which
laid down that Article 29(2) applied to Article 30(1), the framers have not
amended Article 30 to provide to the contrary.
32. Even though a plain reading of Articles 29(2) and Article 30 leads to
no clash between the two Articles, it has been submitted by counsel on
behalf of minorities that the right to establish and administer educational
institutions be considered an absolute right and that by giving aid the
State cannot impose conditions which would restrict or abrogate and/or
abridge, in any manner, the right under Article 30(1). It has been
submitted that the right to administer educational institutions includes
the right to admit students. It has been submitted that the minorities,
whether based on religion or language, have a right to admit students of
their community. It is submitted that this right is not taken away or
abridged because State aid is taken. It is submitted that notwithstanding
the plain language of Articles 29(2) and 30 it must be held that the rights
under Article 30(1) prevail over Article 29(2).
33. To accept such an argument one would have to read into Article 30(2)
words to
the effect "state cannot in granting aid lay down conditions which would
restrict, abridge or abrogate rights under Article 30(1)" or to read into
Article 30(1) words to the effect "notwithstanding the provisions of
Article 29(2)". Purposely no such words are used. A clash is sought to be
created between Article 30(1) and 29(2) when no such clash exists. The
interpretation sought to be given is on presumption that rights under
Article 30(1) are absolute. As is set out in greater detail hereafter,
every single authority of this Court, for the past over 50 years, has held
that the rights under Article 30(1) are subject to restrictions. All
counsel appearing for the minority educational institutions conceded that
rights under Article 30(1) are subject to general secular laws of the
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 100 of 116
country. If rights under Article 30(1) are subject to other laws of the
country it can hardly be argued that they are not subject to a
constitutional provision.
34. The interpretation sought to be placed not only creates a clash between
Articles 29(2) and 30 but also between Article 30 and Article 15(1).
Article 15(1) prohibits the State from discriminating against citizens on
grounds only of religion, race, caste, sex, place of birth or any of them.
If the State were to give aid to a minority educational institution which
only admits students of its community then it would be discriminating
against other citizens who cannot get admission to such institutions. Such
an interpretation would also lead to clash between Article 30 and Article
28(3). There may be a religious minority educational institute set up to
teach their own religion. Such an institute may, if it is unaided, only
admit students who are willing to say their prayers. Yet once aid is taken
such an institution cannot compel any student to take part in religious
instructions unless the student or his parent consents. If Article 30(1)
were to be read in a manner which permits State aided minority educational
institutions to admit students as per their choice, then they could refuse
to admit students who do not agree to take part in religious instructions.
The prohibition prescribed in Article 28(2) could then be rendered
superfluous and/or nugatory. Apart from rendering Article 28(2) nugatory
such an interpretation would set up a very dangerous trend. All minority
educational institutions would then refuse to admit students who do not
agree to take part in religious instructions. In all fairness to all the
counsels appearing for minority educational institutions, it must be stated
that not a single counsel argued that Article 28(2) would not govern
Article 30(1). All counsel fairly conceded that Article 30(1) would be
governed by Article 28(2). One fails to understand how Article 30(1) can be
held to be subject to Article 28(2) but not subject to Article 29(2).
35. Accepting such an interpretation would also lead to an anomalous
situation. As is being held all citizens have a fundamental right to
establish and carry on an educational institution under Article 19(1)(g).
An educational institution can also be established and maintained under
Article 26(a). An educational institution could also be established under
Article 29(1) for purposes of conserving a distinct language, script or
culture. All such educational institutions would be governed by Article
29(2). Thus if a religious educational institution is established under
Article 26(a) it would on receipt of State aid have to comply with Article
29(2). Similarly an educational institute established for conserving a
distinct language, script or culture would, if it is receive State aid,
have to comply with Article 29(2). Such institution would also have been
established for benefit of their own community or language or script or
culture. If such educational institutions have to comply with Article 29(2)
it would be anomalous to say that a religion or linguistic educational
institution, merely because it is set up by a minority need not comply with
Article 29(2). The anomaly would be greater because an educational
institute set up under Article 26(a) would be for teaching religion and an
educational institute set up under Article 29(1) would be for conserving a
distinct language. On the other hand an educational institute set up under
Article 30(1) may be to give general secular education. It would be
anomalous to say that an educational institute set up to teach religion or
to conserve a distinct language, script or culture has to comply with
Article 29(2) but an educational institute set up to give general secular
education does not have to comply with Article 29(2). It must again be
remembered that Article 30 was not framed to create a special or privileged
class of citizens. It was framed only for purposes of ensuring that the
politically powerful majority did not prevent the minority from having
their educational institute. We cannot give to Article 30(1) a meaning
which would result in making the minorities, whether religious or
linguistic, a special or privileged class of citizens. We should give to
Article 30(1) a meaning which would further the basic and overriding
principles of our Constitution viz. equality and secularism. The
interpretation must not be one which would create a further divide between
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 101 of 116
citizen and citizen.
36. It has also been submitted that a minority educational institute would
have been established only for the purpose of giving education to students
of that particular religious or linguistic community. It has been submitted
that if Article 29(2) were to apply then the very basis of establishing
such an educational institution would disappear once State aid is taken.
Whilst considering such a submission one must keep in mind that the desire
to establish educational or other institutions for the benefit of students
of their own community would be there not only in minority communities.
Such a desire would be there in all citizens and communities, whether
majority or minority. If the majority communities, whether religious or
linguistic, can establish and administer educational institutions for their
own community at their own costs why should the position be different for
minorities. If an educational institute established by a majority community
for members of that community only, takes States aid, it would then lose
the right to admit only students of its own community. it would have to
comply with the Constitutional mandate of Article 29(2). The position is no
different for an educational institute established by a minority. The basic
feature of our Constitution is equality and secularism. It follows that the
minority cannot be a more privileged class or section of citizen. At the
cost of repetition it is again emphasised that Article 30 does not deal
with minorities who are economically or socially backward. These are not
communities whose children are not capable of competing on merit, e.g. a
Tamilian in Tamil competes with others and gets admission on merit. Even
when he/she shifts to Maharashtra he/she continues to be able to compete
openly and get admission on merit. Merely because a Tamilian shifts to
Maharashtra or some other State does not mean that Tamilian becomes a
citizen entitled to special privilege or rights not available to other
citizens. This was not the purpose or object of Article 30. Article 30 was
framed only to ensure that the Maharashtrians, by reason of their being
politically powerful, do not prevent the Tamilian from establishing an
educational institution at their own cost. Article 20 merely protects the
right of the minority to establish and administer an educational
institution, i.e. to have the same rights as those enjoyed by majority.
Article 30 gives no right to receive State aid. It is for the institution
to decide whether it wants to received aid. If it decides to take State aid
then Article 30(2) merely provides that the State will not discriminate
against it. When State, whilst giving aid, asks the minority educational
institute to comply with a constitutional mandate, it can hardly be said
that the State is discriminating against that institute. The State is bound
to ensure that all educational institutes, whether majority or minority,
comply with the constitutional mandate.
37. Another respect to be kept in mind is that in practical terms, throwing
open admission to all, does not affect rights under Article 30(1). If the
educational institution is for purposes of teaching the religion or
language of the concerned minority, then even though admission is thrown
open to all very few students of other communities will take admission in
such an educational institution. If the educational institution is giving
general secular education, then the minority character of that institution
does not get affected by having a majority of students from other
communities. Even though the majority of students may be from other
communities the institution will still be under the management of the
minority. Further if the educational institution is a school, then the
management will, in spite of Article 29(2), still be able to take a sizable
number of students from their own community into the school. Article 29(2)
precludes reservations on grounds of religion, race, caste or language. But
it does not preclude giving of preference, if everything else is equal.
Admission into schools generally are by interview. At this stage there is
no common entrance test which determines merit. Undoubtedly children of the
minority communities, contemplated by Article 30(1), would be as bright or
capable as children of other communities. Thus whilst admitting at this
stage preference can always be given to members of their own community so
long as some students of other communities are also admitted and denial is
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 102 of 116
not on basis of religion, race, caste, language or any of them. Thus for
admissions in schools, Article 29(2) will pose no difficulty to minority
institutions. However, Article 29(2) will require, if State aid is taken,
that admissions into college, either under graduate or post graduate and
admission into professional course, be not denied to any citizen on grounds
of religion, race, caste, language or any of them. This would mean that
admissions must be on merit from the common entrance test prescribed by the
University or State. Here also if two students have equal merit, preference
can be given to a student of their own community. Also Article 29(2) does
not preclude minority (or even other educational institutions) admitting or
denying admission on grounds other than religion, race, caste, language or
any of them. Thus e.g. preferential admission could be given to those
students who are willing to serve the community or work in a particular
region, for a particular period of time after passing out. Also in such
cases marks not exceeding 15% can be allotted for interviews. This will
ensure that a sufficient number of students of their own community are
admitted. More importantly there is no reason to believe that students of
these minority communities will not be able to compete on merit. A sizable
number will be available on merit also.
38. Most importantly we are interpreting the Constitution. As the language
of
Articles 29(2) and 30 is clear and unambiguous the Court has to give effect
to it, irrespective of the consequences. This is all the more necessary as
the same is in consonance with the intention of the framers. Court cannot
give an interpretation which creates a clash where none exits. Court cannot
add words which the framers purposely omitted to use/add. Courts cannot
give an interpretation, not supported by a plain reading, on
considerations, such as minority educational institutions not being able to
admit their own students. To be remembered that there is no compulsion to
receive State aid. As was mentioned during the Constituent Assembly Debates
the management can refuse to take aid. But if they choose to take State
aid, then even a minority educational institution must abide by the
Constitutional mandate of Article 29(2) just as they have to comply with
the Constitutional mandate of Article 28(2) and comply with general secular
laws of the country.
39. Thus looked at either from the historical point of view and/or the
intention of the framers and/or from the contextual viewpoint and/or from
principles of interpretation it is clear that Article 29(2) fully applies
to Article 30. If a minority educational institute chooses to take State
aid, it cannot then refuse to admit students on grounds of religion, race,
case, language or any of them.
40. Now let us see whether the principles of "stare decisis" require us to
take a different view. A large number of authorities have been cited and
one has to consider these authorities.
41. The first case, which was decided as far back as on 9th April, 1951,
was the case of The State of Madras v. Srimathi Champakam Dorairajan. It is
reported in (1951) SCR 525. In this case the State of Madras was
maintaining Engineering and Medical Colleges. In those colleges, for many
years before the commencement of the Constitution, the seats used to be
filled up in a proportion, set forth in what was called "the Communal
G.O.". The allocation of seats was as follows:
"Non-Brahmin (Hindu) 6
Backward Hindus 2
Brahmins 2
Harijans 2
Anglo-Indians and Indian
Christians 1
Muslims 1"
After the Constitution was framed a Writ Petition under Article 226 came to
be filed by Srimathi Champakam Dorairajan and one another in the High Court
of Madras. She complained that this Communal G. O. affected her fundamental
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 103 of 116
rights, inter alia, under Article 29(2). On behalf of the State it was
argued that there was no discrimination and no infringement of fundamental
rights. It was argued that it was the duty of the State to take care of and
promote educational and economic interest of the weaker section of the
people. It was argued that giving preferences and/or reservations did not
violate Article 29(2). This argument was repelled and it was held as
follows:
"It will be noticed that while Clause (1) protects the language, script or
culture of a section of the citizens, Clause (2) guarantees the fundamental
right of an individual citizen. The right to get admission into any
educational institution of the kind mentioned in Clause (2) is a right
which an individual citizen has as a citizen and not as a member of any
community or class of citizens. This right is not to be denied to the
citizen on grounds only of religion, race, caste, language or any of them.
If a citizen who seeks admission into any such educational institution has
not the requisite academic qualifications and is denied admission on that
ground, he certainly cannot be heard to complain of an infraction of his
fundamental right under this article. But, on the other hand, if he has the
academic qualifications but is refused admission only on ground of
religion, race, caste, language or any of them, then there is a clear
breach of his fundamental rights.
xxx xxx xxx
xxx xxx xxx
Take the case of the petitioner Srinivasan. It is not disputed that he
secured a much larger number of marks than the marks secured by many of the
Non-Brahmin candidates and yet the Non-Brahmin candidates who secured less
number of marks will be admitted into six out of every 14 seats but the
petitioner Srinivasan will not be admitted into any of them. What is the
reason for this denial of admission except that he is a Brahmin and not a
Non-Brahmin. He may have secured higher marks than the Anglo-Indian and
Indian Christians or Muslim candidates but nevertheless, he cannot get any
of the seats reserved for the last mentioned communities for no fault of
his except that he is a Brahmin and not a member of the aforesaid
communities. Such denial of admission cannot but be regarded as made on
ground only of his caste.
It is argued that the petitioners are not denied admission only because
they are Brahmins but for a variety of reasons, e.g., (a) they are
Brahmins, (b) Brahmins have an allotment of only two seats out of 14 and
(c) the two seats have already been filled up by more meritorious Brahmin
candidates. This may be true so far as these two seats reserved for the
Brahmin are concerned but this line of argument can have no force when we
come to consider the seats reserved for candidates of other communities,
for so far as those seats are concerned, the petitioners are denied
admission into any of them not on any ground other than the sole ground of
their being Brahmins and not being members of the community for whom these
reservations have been made. The classification in the Communal G.O.
proceeds on the basis of the religion, race and caste. In our view, the
classification made in the Communal G.O. is opposed to the Constitution and
constitutes a clear violation of the fundamental rights guaranteed to the
citizen under Article 29(2). In this view of the matter, we do not find it
necessary to consider the effect of Articles 14 or 15 on the specific
articles discussed above."
Thus as far back as in 1951 it has been held that Article 29(2) does not
permit reservation in favour of any caste, community or class of people. An
argument based on the word "only" in Article 29(2), to the effect that
admitting students of their own community did not amount to refusing
admission on grounds of religion, race, caste, language or any of them was
rejected. Undoubtedly, this was a case pertaining to educational
institutions maintained by the State. But the interpretation of Article
29(2) would remain the same even in respect of "educational institutions
aided by the State". In all such institutions there can be no reservations
based on religion, race, caste, language or any of them. The term "any
educational Institution" in Article 29(2) would also include a minority
educational institution under Article 30. Thus the interpretation of
Article 29(2) would remain the same even in respect of a minority
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 104 of 116
educational institution under Article 30(1).
42. In Champakam Dorairajan’s case the reservations were not just for
economically or socially backward communities. There were reservations for
Anglo Indians, Indian Christians, Muslims, Brahmins and Non-Brahmins. After
this Court struck down the reservation the framers of the Constitution
amended Article 15 by adding Article 15(4) which reads as follows:
"15(4). Nothing in this article or in Clause (2) of Article 29 shall
prevent the State from making any special provision for the advancement of
any socially and educationally backward classes of citizens or for the
Scheduled Castes and the Scheduled Tribes."
Thus when the framers of the Constitution did not want Article 29(2) to
apply they have specially so provided. Significantly no such amendment was
made in Article 30(1) even though reservations in favour of minority
communities was also held to be violative of Article 29(2).
43. In the case of the State of Bombay v. Bombay Education Society and Ors.
reported in (1955) 1 SCC 568 an Anglo-Indian School, called Barnes High
Court at Deolali, received aid from the State of Bombay. The State of
Bombay issued a circular order on 6th January, 1954 which enjoined that no
primary or secondary school could admit to a class where English is used as
the medium of instruction, any pupil other than the pupil whose mother
tongue was English. This was challenged in a Writ Petition under Article
226 in the High Court of Bombay. The Petition having been allowed, the
State filed an Appeal to this Court. This Court held as follows:
"Assuming, however, that under the impugned order a section of citizens,
other than Anglo-Indian and citizens of non-Asiatic descent, whose language
is English, may also get admission, even then citizens, whose language is
not English, are certainly debarred by the order from admission to a School
where English is used as a medium of instruction in all the classes.
Article 29(2) ex facie puts no limitation or qualification on the
expression "citizen". Therefore, the construction sought to be put upon
Clause 5 does not apparently help the learned Attorney-General, for even on
that construction the order will contravene the provisions of Article
29(2).
The learned Attorney-General then falls back upon two contentions to avoid
the applicability of Article 29(2). In the first place he contends that
Article 29(2) does not confer any fundamental right on all citizens
generally but guarantees the rights of citizens of minority groups by
providing that they must not be denied admission to educational
institutions maintained by the State or receiving aid out of the State
funds on grounds only of religion, race, caste, language or any of them and
he refers us to the marginal note to the article. This is certainly a new
contention put forward before us for the first time. It does not appear to
have been specifically taken in the affidavits in opposition filed in the
High Court and there is not indication in the judgment under appeal that it
was advanced in this form before the High Court. Nor was this point
specifically made a ground of appeal in the petition for leave to appeal to
this Court. Apart from this, the contention appears to us to be devoid of
merit. Article 29(1) gives protection to any section of the citizens having
a distinct language, script or culture by guaranteeing their right to
conserve the same. Article 30(1) secures to all minorities, whether based
on religion or language, the right to establish and administer educational
institutions of their choice. Now suppose the State maintains an
educational institution to help conserving the distinct language, script or
culture of a section of the citizens or makes grants in aid to an
educational institution established by a minority community based on
religion or language to conserve their distinct language, script or
culture, who can claim the protection of Article 29(2) in the matter of
admission into any such institution? Surely the citizens of the very
section whose language, script or culture is sought to be conserved by the
institution or the citizens who belong to the very minority group which has
established and is administering the institution, do not need any
protection against themselves and therefore Article 29(2) is not designed
for the protection of this section or this minority. Nor do we see any
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 105 of 116
reason to limit Article 29(2) to citizens belonging to a minority group
other than the section or the minorities referred to in Article 29(1) or
Article 30(1), for the citizens, who do no belong to any minority group,
may quite conceivably need this protection just as much as the citizens of
such other minority groups. If it is urged that the citizens of the
majority group are amply protected by Article 15 and do not require the
protection of Article 29(2), then there are several obvious answers to that
argument. The language of Article 29(2) is wide and unqualified and may
well cover all citizens whether they belong to the majority or minority
group. Article 15 protects all citizens against the State whereas the
protection of Article 29(2) extends against the State or any body who
denies the right conferred by it. Further Article 15 protects all citizens
against discrimination generally but Article 29(2) is a protection against
a particular species of wrong namely denial of admission into educational
institutions of the specified kind. In the next place Article 15 (SIC)
quite general and wide in its terms and applies to all citizens, whether
they belong to the majority or minority groups, and gives protection to all
the citizens against discrimination by the State on certain specific
grounds. Article 29(2) confers a special right on citizens for admission
into educational institutions maintained or aided by the State. To limit
this right only to citizens belonging to minority groups will be to provide
a double protection for such citizens and to hold that the citizens of the
majority group have no special educational rights in the nature of a right
to be admitted into an educational institution for the maintenance of which
they make contributions by way of taxes. We see no cogent reason for such
discrimination. The heading under which articles 29 and 30 are grouped
together -- namely "Cultural and Educational Rights" -- is quite general
and does not in terms contemplate such differentiation. If the fact that
the institution is maintained or aided out of State funds is the basis of
this guaranteed right then all citizens, Irrespective of whether they
belong to the majority or minority groups, are alike entitled to the
protection of this fundamental right. In view of all these considerations
the marginal note alone, on which the Attorney-General relies, cannot be
read as controlling the plain meaning of the language in which Article
29(2) has been couched. Indeed in The State of Madras v. Srimathi Champakam
Dorairajan [(1951) SCR 525], this Court has already held as follows:
"It will be noticed that while Clause (1) protects the language, script or
culture or a section of the citizens, Clause (2) guarantees the fundamental
right of an individual citizen. The right to get admission into any
educational institution of the kind mentioned in Clause (2) is a right
which an individual citizen has as a citizen and not as a member of any
community or class of citizens."
In our judgment this part of the contention of the learned Attorney-General
cannot be sustained." (emphasis supplied)
In this case it was also argued that the word "only" in Article 29(2) had
to be given some meaning and that the circular order did not deny citizens
admission only on ground of religion, race, caste, language or any of them.
It was submitted that the object of the circular order was to secure
advancement of Hindi which was ultimately to be the National language. It
was submitted that thus there was no denial "only" on the ground of
religion, race, caste, language or any of them. It was submitted that the
denial was for the purposes of promoting the advancement of the national
language and to facilitate imparting of education through the medium of the
pupils mother tongue. this argument was repelled in the following terms:
"Granting that the object of the impugned order before us was what is
claimed for it by the learned Attorney-General, the question still remains
as to how that object has been sought to be achieved. Obviously that is
sought to be done by denying to all pupils, whose mother tongue is not
English, admission into any School where the medium of instruction is
English. Whatever the object, the immediate ground and direct cause for the
denial is that the mother tongue of the pupil is not English. Adapting the
language of Lord Thankerton, it may be said that the laudable object of the
impugned order does not obviate the prohibition of Article 29(2) because
the effect of the order involved an infringement of this fundamental right,
and that effect is brought about by denying admission only on the ground of
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 106 of 116
language. The same principle is implicit in the decision of this Court in
The State of Madras v. Srimathi Champakam Dorairajan [(1951) SCR 525].
There also the object of the impugned communal G.O. was to advance the
interest of educationally backward classes of citizens but, that object
notwithstanding, this Court struck down the order as unconstitutional
because the modus operandi to achieve that object was directly based only
on one of the forbidden grounds specified in the article. In our opinion
the impugned order offends against the fundamental right guaranteed to all
citizens by Article 29(2)."
It may be mentioned, even though not relevant for the purposes of this
judgment, that in this case it has also been submitted that the rights
under Article 30(1) are only for the purposes of conserving language,
script or culture as set out in Article 29(1). This argument was also
repelled by this Court.
44. Thus, as far back in 1955, a Constitution Bench of this Court has held
that Article 29(2) is applicable to Article 30. It has been held that even
in a minority educational institution all citizens of India are entitled to
admission. It has been held that a citizen cannot be denied admission in a
minority educational institution on ground "only" of religion, race, caste,
language or any of them. To be noted that one of the petitions was from the
Gujarati Hindu community and she was seeking admission into an Anglo-Indian
School. Her right to be admitted was upheld. It has been categorically held
that Article 29(2) applied to an Article 30 educational institute. The
framers of the Constitution did not and have not amended the Constitution
to provide otherwise.
45. In Re The Kerala Education Bill, 1957 reported in (1959) SCR 995, the
President of India made a Reference under Article 143(1) of the
Constitution of India for obtaining opinion of this Court upon certain
questions relating to the constitutional validity of some of the provisions
of the Kerala Education Bill which had been passed by the Kerala
Legislative Assembly, but had been reserved by the Governor for
consideration of the President of India. The questions which were referred
to this Court for consideration were as follows:
"(1) Does Sub-clause (5) of Clause 3 of the Kerala Education Bill, read
with Clause 36 thereof, or any of the provisions of the said sub-clause,
offend Article 14 of the Constitution in any particulars or to any extent?
(2) Do Sub-clause (5) of Clause 3, Sub-clause (3) of Clause 8 and Clauses 9
to 13 of Kerala Education Bill, or any provision thereof, offend Clause (1)
of Article 30 of the Constitution in any particulars or to any extent.
(3) Does Clause 15 of the Kerala Education Bill, or any provisions thereof,
offend Article 14 of the Constitution in any particulars or to any extent?
(4) Does Clause 33 of the Kerala Education Bill, or any provisions thereof,
offend Article 226 of the Constitution in any particulars or to any
extent?"
46. Only question No.2 is relevant for our purposes. Whilst answering
question No.2 this Court, inter alia, observed as follows:
"Re. Question 2: Articles 29 and 30 are set out in Part III of our
Constitution which guarantees our fundamental rights. They are grouped
together under the sub-head "Cultural and Educational Rights". The text and
the marginal notes of both the Articles show that their purpose is to
confer those fundamental rights on certain sections of the community which
constitute minority communities. Under Clause (1) Article 29 and section of
the citizens residing in the territory of India or any part thereof having
a distinct language, script or culture of its own has the right to conserve
the same. It is obvious that a minority community can effectively conserve
its language, script or culture by and though educational institutions and,
therefore, the right to establish and maintain educational institutions of
its choice is a necessary concomitant to the right to conserve its
distinctive language, script or culture and that is what is conferred on
all minorities by Article 30(1) which has hereinbefore been quoted in full.
This right, however, is subject to Clause 2 of Article 29 which provides
that no citizen shall be denied admission into any educational institution
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 107 of 116
maintained by the State or receiving aid out of State funds on grounds only
of religion, race, caste, language or any of them.
xxx xxx xxx
xxx xxx xxx
The second proviso imposes the condition that at least 40 per cent of the
annual admissions must be made available to the members of communities
other than the Anglo- Indian community. Likewise Article 29(2) provides,
inter alia, that no citizen shall be denied admission into any educational
institution receiving aid out of State funds on grounds only of religion,
race, caste, language or any of them. These are the only constitutional
limitations to the right of the Anglo-Indian educational institutions to
receive aid. Learned counsel appearing for two Anglo-Indian schools
contends that the State of Kerala is bound to implement the provisions of
Article 337. Indeed it is stated in the statement of case filed by the
State of Kerala that all Christian schools are aided by that State and,
therefore, the Anglo-Indian schools, being also Chiristian schools, have
been so far getting from the State of Kerala the grant that they are
entitled to under Article 337. Their grievance is that by introducing this
Bill the State of Kerala is now seeking to impose besides the
constitutional limitations mentioned in the second proviso to Article 337
and Article 29(2), further and more onerous conditions on this grant to the
Anglo-Indian educational institutions although their constitutional right
to such grant still subsist." (emphasis supplied)
47. In this case it was argued on behalf of the State that as the minority
instate received State aid it was bound, by virtue of Article 29(2), to
admit students of all communities and thus did not retain its minority
character. That Article 29(2) applied to a minority educational institute
was not denied. The argument that, it lost its minority character because
it admitted students of other communities, was repelled in the following
terms.
"By admitting a non-member into it the minority institution does not shed
its character and cease to be a minority institution. Indeed the object of
conservation of the distinct language, script and culture of a minority may
be better served by propagating the same amongst non- members of the
particular minority community. In our opinion, it is not possible to read
this condition into Article 30(1) of the Constitution."
Thus even in this case it has been accepted and held that Article 26(2)
applies to minority educational institutions established under Article 30.
It has been held that merely because students of other communities are
admitted, the institute does not lose its minority character. In this case
it was also held that State can prescribe reasonable regulations. In this
case regulations which provided for qualifications of teachers and which
provided for State Public Service Commission to select teachers in aide
schools were upheld. Thus even in this case it is accepted that Article
29(2) would govern Article 30(1).
48. In Rev. Sidharjbahi Sabhai v. State of Bombay, the petitioners belonged
to the United Church of Northern India. They maintained educational
institutions primarily for the benefit of the Christian community.
Admittedly these institutions did not receive State aid. Therefore, the
question of Article 29(2) and its applicability to Article 30 did not
arise. On the contrary (as is set out on page 840 of the Report) it was an
admitted position that these institutions did not deny admissions to
students belonging to other communities. The Government of Bombay issued an
order directing all private training colleges to reserve 60% of the seats
for trainee teachers of the schools maintained by the Board. It was held
that this Order violated rights under Article 30. All observations made in
this case are in this context. They cannot be drawn out of context to hold
that even where a minority institute receives aid the Constitutional
mandate of Article 29(2) would not apply. In this case also it is held that
the rights under Article 30(1) are subject to reasonable restrictions and
regulations. It was held that restrictions in the interest of efficiency,
discipline, health, sanitation, public order etc. could be imposed.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 108 of 116
49. In Rev. Father W. Proost v. State of Bihar, the petitioners maintained
St. Xavier’s College which was affiliate to the Patan University. With
effect form 1st March, 1962 Section 48-A was introduced. Under this Section
a University Service Commission was established for affiliated colleges.
Sub-clause (e) of Section 48-A provided that appointments, dismissals,
removals, termination of service or deduction in rank teachers of an
affiliated college should be made by the Governing body of the college on
the recommendation of the Commission. Further, Sub-clause (11) provided
that all disciplinary actions could be taken only in consultation with the
Commission. The petitioners challenged the virus of the provision and
claimed that it affected their rights under Article 30(1) of the
Constitution. Whilst the Petition was pending in this Court; Section 48-B
was introduced in the Bihar State Universities Act, which provided that
appointments, dismissals, removals, termination of service or reduction in
rank of teachers or disciplinary measures could only be taken with the
approval of the Commission and the Syndicate of the University. This was
also challenged. Thus in this case the interplay of Sections 29(2) and
30(1) did not come into questions at all. In this case it was an admitted
position that the college was open to non-Catholics also. One of the
arguments raised on behalf of the State was that since the admissions were
not reserved only for students of the Jesuits community the college did not
qualify for protection under Article 30(1). This argument was negatived by
holding that merely because members of other communities were admitted to
the institution did not mean the institution lost its minority character.
This case thus shows that even if members of other community are admitted
into the institution the institution would still remain a minority
institution which is under the management of the minority.
50. In Rev. Bishop S.K. Patro v. State of Bihar, an educational institute
was started by a Christian with the help of funds received from London
Missionary Society. The question was whether the institute was not entitled
to protection of Article 30(1) merely because funds were obtained from
United Kingdom and the management was carried on by some persons who may
not have been born in India. This Court held that rights under Article 29
could only be claimed by Indian citizens, but Article 30 guarantees the
rights of minority. It was held that the said Article does not refer to
citizenship as the qualification for members of the minority. This case
therefore does not deal with the question of the interplay between Articles
29(2) and 30(1).
51. In the case of State of Kerala v. Very Rev. Mother Provincial reported
in (1971) 1 SCR 734, the Constitutional validity of Sections 48, 49, 53,
56, 58 and 63 of the Kerala University Act was challenged as violation the
rights under Section 30(1). In this case there is no discussion regarding
the effect of Article 29(2) on Article 30. In this case also it was held
that rights under Article 30(1) are subject to reasonable restrictions.
52. The case of D.A.V. College v. Punjab reported in (1971) Supp. SCR 677
does not deal with Article 29(2) and its effect on Article 30. In this case
Punjabi was made the sole medium of instruction and examination under the
Punjab University Act. It was held that this violated the rights under
Article 29(1) as well as Article 30(1) inasmuch as the right to have an
educational institution of a choice includes the right to have a choice of
the medium of instruction also.
53. In the second case of D.A.V. College v. State of Punjab reported in
(1971) Supp. SCR 688 the Dayanand Anglo Vedic College Trust was formed to
perpetuate the memory of the founder of the Arya Samaj. It ran various
institutions in the country. The collages managed and administered by the
Trust were, before the Punjab Reorganisation Act, affiliated to the Punjab
University. After the reorganisation of the State of Punjab in 1969, the
Punjab Legislative passed the Guru Nank University (Amritsar) Act (21 of
1969). Colleges in the districts specified ceased to be affiliated to the
Punjab University and were to be associated with and admitted to the
privileges of the new university. Sub-section (2) of Section 4 of the Act
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 109 of 116
provided that the university "shall make provision for study and research
on the life and teaching of Guru Nanka and their cultural and religious
impact in the context of Indian and World Civilisation; and Sub-section (3)
enjoined the University "to promote studies to provide for research in
Punjabi language and literature and to undertake measures for the
development of Punjabi language, literature and culture". By Clause 2(1)(a)
of the Statutes framed under the Act, the colleges were required to have a
regularly constituted governing body consisting of not more than 20 persons
approved by the Senate including, among others, two representatives of the
University and the principal of the College. Under Clause (1)(3) if these
requirements were not complied with the affiliation was liable to be
withdrawn. By Clause 18 the staff initially appointed were to be approved
by the Vice Chancellor and subsequent changes had to be reported to the
University for the Vice- Chancellor’s approval. And by Clause 18 non-
government colleges were to comply with the requirements laid down in the
ordinance governing service and conduct of teachers. It was held that
Clause 2(1)(a) interfered with the right of the religious minority to
administer their educational institutions, but that Clause 18 did not
suffer from the same vice. It was held that ordinances prescribing
regulations governing the conditions of service and conduct of teachers
must be considered to be one enacted in the larger interest of the
institution to ensure their efficiency and excellence. It was similarly
held that Sub- sections (2) and (3) of Section 4 do not offend any of the
rights under Articles 29(1) and 30(1). It must be observed that, whilst
dealing with the Articles 29 and 30, this Court observed as follows:
"It will be observed that Article 29(1) is wider than Article 30(1), in
that, while any Section of the citizens including the minorities, can
invoke the rights guaranteed under Article 29(1), the rights guaranteed
under Article 30(1) are only available to the minorities based on religion
or language. It is not necessary for Article 30(1) that the minority should
be both a religious minority as well as linguistic minority. It is
sufficient if it is one or the other or both. A reading of these two
Articles together would lead us to conclude that a religious or linguistic
minority has a right to establish and administer educational institutions
of its choice for effectively conserving its distinctive language, script
or culture, which right however is subject to the regulatory power of the
State for maintaining and facilitating the excellence of its standards.
This right is further subject to Clause (2) of Article 29 which provides
that no citizen shall be denied admission into any educational institution
which is maintained by the State or receives aid out of State funds, on
grounds only of religion, race, caste, language or any of them." (emphasis
supplied)
54. Thus, even in 1971, this Court has held that Article 29(2) governs
Article 30(1). The law laid down in Champakam Dorairajan’s case, in Bombay
Education Society’s case and in Kerala Education Bill’s case has been
reaffirmed. Till this date no contrary view has been taken. Not a single
case has held that rights under Article 30(1) would not be governed by
Article 29(2).
55. The authority on which strong reliance has been placed by the counsel
of the minority is St. Xaviers College’s case (supra). St. Xaviers College
was affiliated to the Gujarat University. A resolution was passe by the
Senate of the University that all instruction, teaching and training in
courses of studies in respect of which the University was competent to hold
examinations shall be conducted by the university and shall be imported by
teachers of the University. Section 5 of the Act provided that no
educational institution situated within the University shall, save with the
sanction of the State Government, be associated in any way with or seek
admission to any privilege of any other University established by law.
Section 33A(1)(a) of the Act provided that every College other than a
Government College or a College maintained by the Government, shall be
under the management of a governing body which included among others, the
Principal of the College and a representative of the University nominated
by the Vice-Chancellor. Section 33A(1)(b)(I) provided that in the case of
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 110 of 116
recruitment of the Principal, a selection committee is required to be
constituted consisting of, among others, a representatives of the
University nominated by the Vice-Chancellor and (ii) in the case of
selection of a member of the teaching staff of the College a selection
committee consisting of the Principal and a representative of the
university nominated by the Vice-Chancellor. Sub-section (3) of the Section
stated that the provisions of Sub-section (1) of Section 33A shall be
deemed to be a condition of affiliation of every college referred to in
that sub-section. Section 39 provided that within the University area all
post-graduate instruction, teaching and training shall be conducted by the
University or by such affiliated College or institution and in such
subjects as may be prescribed by statutes. Section 40(1) enacted that the
Court of the University may determine that all instructions, teaching and
training in courses of studies in respect of which the University is
competent to hold examinations shall be conducted by the University and
shall be imparted by the teachers of the University. Sub-section (2) of
Section 40 stated that the State Government shall issue a notification
declaring that the provisions of Section 41 shall come into force on such
date as may be specified in the notification. Section 41(1) of the Act
stated that all colleges within the University area which are admitted to
the privilege of the university under Section 5(3) and all colleges within
the said area which may hereafter be affiliated to the University shall be
constituent colleges of the University. Sub-section (4) stated that the
relations of the constituent colleges and other institutions within the
University area shall be governed by statutes to be made in that behalf.
Section 51A(a)(b) enacted that no member of the teaching other academic and
non-teaching staff of an affiliated college shall be dismissed or removed
or reduced in rank except after an enquiry in accordance with the procedure
prescribed in Clause (a) and the penalty to be inflicted on him is approved
by the Vice-Chancellor or any other Officer of the University authorised by
the Vice-Chancellor in this behalf. Similarly Clause (b) of Sub-section (2)
required that such termination should be approved by the Vice-Chancellor or
any officer of the University authorised by the Vice-Chancellor in this
behalf. Section 52A(1) enacted that any dispute between the governing body
and any member of the teaching and other staff shall, on a request of the
governing body or of the member concerned be referred to a tribunal of
arbitration consisting of one member nominated by the governing body of the
college, one member nominated by the member concerned and an umpire
appointed by the Vice-Chancellor. The Petitioner Society contended that
they had a fundamental right to establish and administer educational
institutions of their choice and that such a right included the right of
affiliation. They therefore challenged the constitutional validity of the
above Sections. It is in this context that various observations have been
made. These observations cannot be drawn out of context. In this case it
was an admitted position, as set out by Justice Khanna, that children of
all classes and creeds were admitted to the college provided they met the
qualifying standards. Thus the College never claimed the right to only
admit students of its own community. It acknowledged the fact that it had
to admit students of all classes and creeds. The majority Judgment,
therefore, did not deal with the question or interplay between Articles
29(2) and 30. Even though it did not deal with the interplay of Articles
29(2) and 30, it was clear that reasoning of the majority is based on the
fact that the College did not deny admissions to the students of other
communities. This is clearly indicated by the test which had been laid down
by the majority. This test reads as follows:
"Such regulation must satisfy a dual test - the test of reasonableness, and
the test that it is regulative of the educational character of the
institution and is conducive to making the institution an effective vehicle
of education for the minority community or other persons who resort to it."
(emphasis supplied)
Thus it is held by the majority that the institute is to be made an
effective vehicle of education not just for the minority community but also
for other persons who resort to do. This indicates that the majority made
the observations on the understanding that admissions were not restricted
only to students of minority community once State aid was received. This
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 111 of 116
aspect is clearly brought out in the Judgment of Justice Dwivedi who,
whilst dealing with the various provisions of the Constitution, held as
follows:
"A glance at the context and scheme of Part III of the Constitution would
show that the Constitution makers did not intend to confer absolute rights
on a religious or linguistic minority to establish and administer
educational institutions. The associate Article 29(2) imposes one
restriction on the right in Article 30(1). No religious or linguistic
minority establishing and administering an educational institution which
receives aid from the State funds shall deny admission to any citizen to
the institution on grounds only of religion, race, caste, language or any
of them. The right to admit a student to an educational institution is
admittedly comprised in the right to administer it. This right is partly
curtailed by Article 29(2).
The right of admission is further curtailed by Article 15(4) which provides
an exception to Article 29(2). Article 15(4) enables the State to make any
special provision for the advancement of any socially and educationally
backward class of citizens or for the scheduled caste and scheduled tribes
in the matter of admission in the educational institutions maintained by
the State or receiving aid from the State.
Article 28(3) imposes a third restriction on the right in Article 30(1). It
provides that no person attending any educational institution recognised or
receiving aid by the State shall be required to take part in any religious
instruction that may be imparted in such institution or to attend any
religious worship that may be conducted in such institution or in any
premises attached thereto unless such person or, if such person is a minor,
his guardian has given his consent thereto. Obviously, Article 28(3)
prohibits a religious minority establishing and administering an
educational institution which receives aid or is recognised by the State
from compelling any citizen reading in the institution to receive religious
instruction against his wishes or if minor against the wishes of his
guardian. It cannot be disputed that the right of a religious minority to
impart religious instruction in an educational institution forms part of
the right to administer the institution. And yet Article 28(3) curtails
that right to a certain extent.
To sum up Articles 29(2), 15(4) and 28(3) place certain express limitations
on the right in Article 30(1). There are also certain implied limitations
on this right. The right should be read subject to those implied
limitations." (emphasis supplied)
Thus even in this authority the principle that Article 29(2) applies to
Article 30(1) has been recognised and upheld. This case also holds that
reasonable restrictions can be placed on the rights under Article 30(1)
subject to the test set out hereinabove.
56. In the case of Gandhi Faizeam College v. Agra University reported in
(1975) 3 SCR 810 the minority college was affiliated to the University of
Agra. It applies for permission to start teaching in certain courses of
study. The University, as a condition of permitting the additional
subjects, insisted that the Managing Committee must be re-constituted in
line with Statute 14-A which provided that the principal of the College and
senior-most staff member should be part of the Managing Committee. The
Petitioners filed a Writ Petition in the High Court challenging the
imposition of such a condition on the ground that it was violative of their
rights under Article 30(1). The High Court dismissed the Writ Petition.
Therefore the Petitioners came to this Court. The majority of Judges upheld
the order of the High Court, inter alia, on the ground that the right under
Article 30(1) is not the absolute right and that it is a right which can be
restricted. After considering the various authorities (including some of
those set out hereinabove) it was held that reasonable regulations are
desirable, necessary and constitutional, provided they shape but not cut
out of shape the individual personality of the minority. It was held as
follows:
"In all these cases administrative autonomy is imperilled transgressing
purely regulatory limits. In our case autonomy is virtually left intact and
refurbishing, not restructuring, is prescribed. The core of the right is
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 112 of 116
not gouged out at all and the regulation is at once reasonable and
calculated to promote excellence of the institution - a text book instance
of constitutional conditions."
Thus a condition that the Managing Committee be reconstituted is upheld. To
be noted that the directly affects the right of administration. Now
compulsory the principal and one of the staff members would be part of the
Managing Committee. Yet it has been held that this is not violative of
rights under Article 30(1).
57. In the case of St. Stephen’s College v. University of Delhi, one of the
questions was the applicability of Article 29(2) to Article 30(1). Even in
this case it has been accepted that Article 29(2) applies to Section 30(1).
However, the majority of the Judges, after noting that Article 29(2)
applies to Article 30(1), sought to compromise and/or strike a balance
between Articles 29(2) and 30(1). They therefore prescribed a ratio of 50%
to be admitted on merits and 50% to be admitted by the College from their
own community. All Counsel, whether appearing for the minorities or for the
States/local authorities attacked this judgment and submitted that it is
not correct. Of course Counsel for the minorities were claiming a right to
admit students of their own community even to the extent of 100%. On the
other hand the submission was that once State aid is taken Article 29(2)
applied and not even a single student could be admitted on basis of
religion, race, caste, language or any of them. Thus all counsel attacked
the judgment as being not correct. In matters of interpretation, there can
be no compromise. As stated above if the language and meaning are clear
then Courts must give effect to it irrespective of the consequence. With
the greatest of respect to the learned Judges concerned, once it was held
that Article 29(2) applied to Article 30, there was no question of trying
to balance rights or to seek a compromise.
58. Justice Kasliwal dissented from the majority view. It must be noted
that in St. Stephen’s case, in his minority judgment, he has held that
Article 29(2) governs Article 30(1) and that if the minority educational
institute chooses to take aid it must comply with the constitutional
mandate of Article 29(2). The Judgment in St. Stephens case is of recent
origin. It therefore cannot form the basis for applying the principles of
"State Decisis".
59. Thus, from any point of view i.e. historical or contextual or on
principles of pure interpretation or on principles of "stare decisis" the
only interpretation possible is that the rights under Article 30(1) are
conferred on minorities to establish and administer educational
institutions of their choice at their own cost. The right is a special
right which is given by way of protection so that the majority, which is
politically powerful, does not prevent the minorities from establishing
their educational institutions. This right was not created because the
minorities were economically and socially backward or that their children
would not be able to compete on merit with children of other communities.
This right was not conferred in order to create a special category of the
citizens. What has been granted to them is a right which was equal to the
rights enjoyed by the majority community, namely, to establish and
administer educational institutions of their choice at their own cost. As
the institution was to be established and maintained at their own expense
no right to receive aid has been conferred on the minority institute. All
that Article 30(2) provides is that the State while granting aid would not
discriminate merely on the ground that an educational institute was under
the management of a minority. Article 30(2) has been so worded as the
framers were aware that once State aid was taken some aspects of the right
of administration would have to be compromised and given up. The minority
educational institute have a choice. They need not take State aid. But if
they choose to take State aid then they have to comply with constitutional
mandates which are based on principles which are as important as if not
more important than the rights given to the minorities. Our Constitution
mandates that the State cannot discriminate on grounds only of religion,
race, caste, language or any of them. Our Constitution mandates that all
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 113 of 116
citizens are equal and that no citizen can be denied admission into
educational institution maintained by the State or receiving aid out of
State funds on grounds only of religion, race, caste, language or any of
them. Thus if State aid is taken the minority educational institution must
then not refuse admission to students of other communities on any of those
grounds. In other words, they cannot then insist that they would admit
students only of their community. Of course, as stated above, preferences
could always be given to students of their own community. But preference
necessarily implies that all other things are equal, i.e. that on merit the
student of their community is equal to the merit of the student of other
community. As stated above, in para 37, in schools the minority community
would have a larger amount of leeway and so long as the school admits a
sufficient number of outsiders Article 29(2) would not be violated if the
refusal is not made on the basis of the religion, race, caste, language or
any of them. Of course, at the under-graduate and post-graduate stages
merit would have to be the criteria. At these stages there are common
entrance examinations by which inter se merit can be assessed. But even
here, the minority educational institute can admit students of its own
community on grounds like those set out in para 37 above. They could give
some preference to students coming from their own schools. There could be
interviews wherein not more than 15% marks can be allotted. Students of
their community will be able to compete on merit also. All these would
ensure that a sufficient number of students of their own community receive
admissions. But the minority institute, once it receives State aid, cannot
refuse to abide by the constitutional mandate of Article 29(2). It would be
paradoxical to unsettle settled law at such a late stage. It would be
paradoxical to hold that the rights under Article 30(1) are subject to
municipal and other laws, but that they are not subject to the
constitutional mandate under Article 29(2). It would be paradoxical to held
that Article 30(1) is subject to Article 28(3) but not to Article 29(2). It
must be remembered that when Article 29(2) was introduced it was part of
the same Article (viz. Article 23) which also included what is now Article
30(1). Not only the Constituent Assembly Debates but also the fact that
they were part of the same Article shows that Article 29(2) was intended by
the framers of the Constitution to apply even to institutions established
under Article 30(1). Thus Article 29(2) governs educational institutions
established under Article 30(1). The language is clear and unambiguous. It
is clear that Article 30(1) has full play so long as the educational
institution is established and maintained and administered by the minority
at their own costs. Article 30(2) purposely and significantly does not make
taking or granting of aid compulsory. The minority educational institution
need not take aid. However, it is chooses to take aid then it can hardly
claim that it would not abide by the Constitutional mandate of Article
29(2). Once the language is clear and unambiguous full effect must be given
to Article 29(2) irrespective of the consequences. This can be the only
interpretation. The only interplay between Articles 29(2) and 30(1) is that
once State aid is taken, then students of all communities must be admitted.
In others words, no citizen can be refused admission on grounds of
religion, race, caste or creed or any of them. Reserving seats for students
of one’s own community would in effect be refusing admission on grounds of
religion, race, caste, or creed. As there is no conflict the question of
balancing rights under Article 30(1) and Article 29(2) of the Constitution
does not arise. As stated by the US Supreme Court in the case of San
Antonio Independent School District v. Demetrio P. Rudriguez (411 US 1), it
is not the province of this Court to create substantive Constitutional
rights in the name of guaranteeing equal protection.
60. In view of above discussion we answer the questions as follows:
Q.1. What is the meaning and content of the expression "minorities" in
Article 30 of the Constitution of India?
A. Linguistic and religious minorities are covered by the expression
"minority" under Article 30 of the Constitution. Since reorganization of
the States in India has been on linguistic lines, therefore, for the
purpose of determining the minority, the unit will be the State and not the
whole of India. Thus, religious and linguistic minorities, who have been
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 114 of 116
put at par in Article 30, have to be considered state wise.
Q.2. What is meant by the expression "religion" in Article 30(1)? Can the
followers of a sect or denomination of a particular religion claim
protection under Article 30(1) on the basis that they constitute a minority
in the State, even though the followers of that religion are in majority in
that State?
A. This question need not be answered by this Bench; it will be dealt with
by a regular Bench.
Q.3(a) What are the indicia for treating an educational institution as a
minority educational institution? Would an institution be regarded as a
minority educational institution because it was established by a person(s)
belonging to a religious or linguistic minority or its being administered
by a person(s) belonging to a religious or linguistic minority?
A. This question need not be answered by this Bench, it will be dealt with
by a regular Bench.
Q.3(b) To what extent can professional education be treated as a matter
coming under minorities rights under Article 30?
A. Article 30(1) gives religious and linguistic minorities the right to
establish and administer educational institutions of their choice. The use
of the words "of their choice", indicates that professional educational
institutions would be covered by Article 30.
Q.4. Whether the admission of students to minority educational institution,
whether aided or unaided, can be regulated by the State Government or by
the University to which the institution is affiliated?
A. Admission of students to unaided minority educational institutions,
viz., Schools where scope for merit based selection is practically nil,
cannot be regulated by the State or the University (except for providing
the qualifications and minimum conditions of eligibility in the interest of
academic standards).
Right to admit students being an essential facet of right to administer
educational institutions of their choice, as contemplated under Article 30
of the Constitution, the State Government or the University may not be
entitled to interfere with that right in respect of unaided minority
institutions provided however that the admission to the unaided educational
institutions is on transparent basis and the merit is the criteria. The
right to administer, not being an absolute one, there could be regulator
measures for ensuring educational standards and maintain exceptance thereof
and it is more so, in the matter of admission to undergraduate Colleges and
professional institutions.
The moment aid is received or taken by a minority educational institution
it would be governed by Article 29(2) and would then not be able to refuse
admission on grounds of religion, race, caste, language or any of them. In
other words it cannot then give preference to students of its own
community. Observance of inter se merit amongst the applicants must be
ensured. In the case of aided professional institutions, it can also be
stipulated that passing of common entrance test held by the State agency is
necessary to seek admission.
Q.5(a) Whether the minority’s rights to establish and administer
educational institutions of their choice will include the procedure and
method of admission and selection of students?
A. A minority institution may have its own procedure and method of
admission as well as selection of students, but such procedure must be fair
and transparent and selection of students in professional and higher
educational colleges should be on the basis of merit. The procedure adopted
or selection made should not tantamount to mal-administration. Even an
unaided minority institution, ought not to ignore merit of the students for
admission, while exercising its right to admit students to the colleges,
aforesaid, as in that event. The institution will fail to achieve
excellence.
Q.5(b) Whether the minority institutions’ right of admission of students
and to lay down procedure and method of admission, if any, would be
affected in any way by the receipt of State aid?
A. Further to what is stated in answer to question No. 4, it must be stated
that whilst giving aid to professional institutions, it would be
permissible for the authority giving aid to prescribe by-rules or
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 115 of 116
regulations, the conditions on the basis of which admission will be granted
to different aided colleges by virtue of merit, coupled with the
reservation policy of the state. The merit may be determined either through
a common entrance test conducted by the University or the Government
followed by counselling, or on the basis of an entrance test conducted by
individual institutions - the method to be followed is for the university
or the government to decide. The authority may also devise other means to
ensure that admission is granted to an aided professional institution on
the basis of merit. In the case of such institutions, it will be
permissible for the government or the university to provide that
consideration should be shown to the weaker sections of the society.
Q.5(c) Whether the statutory Provisions which regulate the facets of
administration like control over educational agencies, control over
governing bodies, conditions of affiliation including
recognition/withdrawal thereof, and appointment of state employees,
teachers and Principals including their service conditions and regulation
of fees, etc. would interfere with the right of administration of
minorities?
A. So far as the statutory provisions regulating the facets administration
is concerned, in case of an unaided minority educational institution, the
regulatory measure of control should be minimal and the conditions of
recognition as well as conditions of affiliation to an University or Board
have to be complied with, but in the matter of day-to-day Management, like
appointment of staff, teaching and non-teaching and administrative control
over them, the Management should have the freedom and there should not be
any external controlling agency. However, a rational procedure for
selection of teaching staff and for taking disciplinary action has to be
evolved by the Management itself. For redressing the grievances of such
employees who are subjected to punishment or termination from service, a
mechanism will have to be evolved and in our opinion, appropriate tribunals
could be constituted, and till then, such tribunal could be presided over
by a Judicial officer of the rank of District Judge. The state or other
controlling authorities, however, can always prescribe the minimum
qualifications, salaries, experience and other conditions bearing on the
merit of an individual for being appointed as a teacher of an educational
institution.
Regulations can be framed governing service conditions for teaching and
other staff for whom aid is provided by the State without interfering with
overall administrative control of Management over the staff,
Government/University representative can be associated with the selection
committee and the guidelines for selection can be laid down. In regard to
un-aided minority educational institutions such regulations, which will
ensure a check over unfair practices and general welfare, of teachers could
be framed.
There could be appropriate mechanism to ensure that no capitation fee is
charged and profiteering is not restored to.
The extent of regulations will not be the same for aided and un-aided
institutions.
Q.6(a) Where can minority institution be operationally located? Where a
religious or linguistic minority in State ’A’ establishes an educational
institution in the said State, can such educational institution grant
preferential admission/reservations and other benefits to members of the
religious/linguistic group from other States where they are non-minorities?
A. This question need not be answered by this Bench; it will be dealt with
by a regular Bench.
Q.6(b) Whether it would be correct to say that only the members of that
minority residing in State ’A’ will be treated as the members of the
minority vis-a-vis such institution?
A. This question need not be answered by this Bench; it will be dealt with
by a regular Bench.
Q.7. Whether the member of a linguistic non-minority in one State can
establish a trust/society in another State and claim minority status in
that State?
A. This question need not be answered by this Bench; it will be dealt with
by a regular Bench.
http://JUDIS.NIC.IN SUPREME COURT OF INDIA Page 116 of 116
Q.8 Whether the ratio laid down by this Court in the St. Stephen’s case
(St. Stephen’s College v. University of Delhi is correct? If no, what
order?
A. The ratio laid down in St. Stephen’s College case is not correct. Once
State aid is taken and Article 29(2) comes into play, then no question
arises of trying to balance Article 29(2) and 31. Article 29(2) must be
given its full effect.
Q.9 Whether the decisions of this Court in Unni Krishnan J.P. v. State of
A.P. (except where it holds that primary education is a fundamental right)
and the scheme framed thereunder require reconsideration/modification and
if yes, what?
A. The scheme framed by this Court in Unni Krishnan’s case and the
direction to impose the same, except where it holds that primary education
is a fundamental right, is unconstitutional. However, the principle that
there should not be capitation fee or profiteering is correct. Reasonable
surplus to meet cost of expansion and augmentation of facilities does not,
however, amount to profiteering.
Q.10 Whether the non-minorities have the right to establish and administer
educational institution under Articles 21 and 29(1) read with Article 14
and 15(1), in the same manner and to the same extent as minority
institutions? and
Q.11 What is the meaning of the expressions "Education" and "Educational
Institutions" in various provisions of the Constitution? Is the right to
establish and administer educational institutions guaranteed under the
Constitution?
A. The expression "education" in the Articles of the Constitution means and
includes education at all levels from the primary school level up to the
post-graduate level. It includes professional education. The expression
"educational institutions" means institutions that impart education, where
"education" is as understood hereinabove.
The right to establish and administer educational institutions is
guaranteed under the Constitution to all citizens under Article 19(1)(g)
and 26, and to minorities specifically under Article 30.
All citizens have a right to establish and administer educational
institutions under Articles 19(1)(g) and 26, but this right will be subject
to the provisions of Articles 19(6) and 26(a). However, minority
institutions will have a right to admit students belonging to the minority
group, in the manner as discussed in this judgment.
Hon’ble Judge :
Syed Shah Mohammed Quddir on 25th November 2002 Gave reasons for concurring
opinion in the judgment.